Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a order_n time_n 2,805 5 3.1681 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A65713 The Protestant reconciler. Part II earnestly perswading the dissenting laity to joyn in full communion with The Church of England, and answering all the objections of the non-conformists against the lawfulness of their submission unto the rites and constitutions of that church / by a well-wisher to the churches peace, and a lamenter of her sad divisions. Whitby, Daniel, 1638-1726. 1683 (1683) Wing W1735; ESTC R39049 245,454 419

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

therefore_o certain_a that_o god_n will_v give_v his_o grace_n and_o spiritual_a aid_n to_o all_o who_o do_v sincere_o promise_v and_o engage_v to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o baptismal_a vow_n and_o this_o sign_n be_v apt_a to_o signify_v that_o aid_n and_o favour_n and_o use_v throughout_o so_o many_o age_n to_o that_o end_n i_o see_v not_o why_o the_o bishop_n may_v not_o certify_v the_o confirm_a person_n of_o this_o truth_n by_o such_o a_o sign_n and_o 2._o it_o be_v only_o a_o indicatory_a sign_n or_o adumbration_n of_o this_o grace_n not_o a_o exhibitory_a sign_n can_v be_v proper_o a_o sacrament_n have_v thus_o answer_v the_o objection_n against_o those_o ceremony_n which_o have_v be_v scruple_v most_o and_o with_o most_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o reason_n by_o dissenter_n it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o answer_v or_o to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o their_o remain_a scruple_n by_o attend_v to_o these_o follow_a proposition_n that_o the_o laudable_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v of_o present_a observation_n 1._o prop._n 1._o 1._o bishop_n taylor_n dust_n dubit_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 4._o r._n 15._o §._o 1._o be_v fit_a to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o christian_n this_o we_o learn_v from_o st._n paul_n who_o reprove_v the_o contentiousness_n of_o those_o who_o against_o the_o usage_n of_o christian_n and_o of_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v will_v wear_v long_a hair_n with_o this_o we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n 36._o 1_o cor._n 11.16.14_o 36._o and_o plead_v for_o order_n from_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o also_o from_o the_o evidence_n of_o reason_n for_o in_o such_o case_n where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n the_o manner_n of_o christian_n introduce_v a_o law_n so_o far_o that_o we_o can_v recede_v from_o it_o without_o some_o probable_a cause_n i._n e._n we_o can_v do_v it_o without_o scandal_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o love_n to_o conform_v to_o the_o custom_n of_o christian_n with_o who_o we_o do_v converse_v who_o either_o will_v think_v you_o blame_v their_o custom_n or_o despise_v their_o person_n if_o you_o comply_v not_o and_o that_o you_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o company_n of_o ignorant_a person_n who_o know_v not_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v or_o as_o wicked_a person_n who_o inconsiderate_o will_v do_v what_o they_o shall_v not_o beside_o it_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o singularity_n to_o thwart_v and_o cavil_v at_o and_o to_o refuse_v compliance_n with_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n where_o we_o be_v which_o have_v in_o they_o no_o apparent_a evil_n now_o singularity_n be_v only_o laudable_a in_o matter_n that_o be_v excellent_a and_o pious_a never_o in_o matter_n of_o indifferency_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n for_o the_o custom_n of_o our_o church_n in_o deliver_v the_o sacramental_a element_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o communicant_a and_o speak_v to_o they_o several_o e._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ap._n 2._o p._n 97._o e._n for_o justin_n martyr_n declare_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o bishop_n have_v give_v thanks_o those_o who_o be_v call_v deacon_n do_v distribute_v to_o every_o one_o that_o be_v present_a bread_n and_o wine_n mix_v with_o water_n and_o tertullian_n inform_v we_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n non_fw-fr de_fw-fr aliorum_fw-la manibus_fw-la quàm_fw-la presidentium_fw-la 3._o de_fw-fr cor._n mil._n c._n 3._o from_o the_o hand_n of_o no_o other_o person_n than_o those_o who_o preside_v in_o the_o church_n moreover_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o say_v to_o every_o on_o of_o they_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n 5._o august_n resp_n ad_fw-la oar_n q._n 49._o ambros_n de_fw-fr sacram_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 5._o and_o of_o the_o people_n several_o to_o say_v amen_o when_o they_o receive_v it_o this_o be_v say_v every_o where_o say_v austin_n and_o so_o the_o custom_n of_o distribute_v to_o all_o and_o of_o receive_v several_o by_o all_o must_v be_v the_o constant_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 2_o this_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n for_o the_o retain_v of_o godfathers_n and_o godmothers_n 400._o compan_n part_n 3_o p._n 400._o for_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v so_o early_o say_v the_o learned_a dr._n comber_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o fix_v the_o time_n of_o their_o beginning_n the_o most_o ancient_a father_n who_o speak_v of_o baptism_n do_v mention_v they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o offerer_n of_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o justin_n martyr_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o susceptores_fw-la as_o donysius_fw-la areop_n of_o sponsores_fw-la as_o tertullian_n of_o fideijussores_fw-la or_o suretys_n as_o st._n austin_n 2_o 399._o p._n 399._o this_o custom_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o jew_n as_o also_o be_v that_o of_o infant_n baptism_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o rector_n of_o the_o house_n of_o judgement_n be_v to_o take_v care_n to_o baptise_v the_o infant_n of_o proselyte_n and_o according_o be_v to_o be_v call_v their_o father_n and_o there_o be_v one_o appoint_v to_o hold_v the_o child_n in_o circumcision_n call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o by_o the_o modern_a jew_n who_o still_o retain_v this_o custom_n the_o surety_n and_o very_o learned_a man_n believe_v this_o custom_n to_o be_v as_o ancient_a among_o the_o jew_n as_o the_o time_n of_o isaiah_n it_o be_v high_o probable_a that_o those_o witness_n mention_v chap._n 8.2_o at_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o those_o we_o call_v godfathers_n &_o godmothers_n and_o 3_o though_o one_o of_o the_o reason_n which_o make_v they_o the_o more_o necessary_a in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n those_o persecution_n which_o cut_v off_o the_o parent_n and_o so_o leave_v the_o poor_a infant_n uncapable_a of_o christian_a education_n without_o the_o help_n of_o surety_n have_v long_o since_o cease_v yet_o be_v they_o still_o continue_v for_o good_a end_n as_o 1._o to_o convenant_n in_o behalf_n of_o those_o infant_n who_o can_v enter_v into_o covenant_n by_o themselves_o 2_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o child_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o confirmation_n and_o own_o their_o covenant_n hereafter_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v surety_n 3_o that_o every_o christian_a may_v have_v a_o monitor_n who_o be_v present_a and_o concern_v in_o his_o vow_n whence_o they_o be_v style_v witness_n and_o 4_o whereas_o some_o object_n that_o the_o use_n of_o surety_n be_v make_v a_o necessary_a condition_n in_o our_o lyturgy_n of_o administer_a baptism_n to_o infant_n because_o it_o be_v say_v this_o infant_n must_v also_o faithful_o for_o his_o part_n promise_n by_o you_o that_o be_v his_o surety_n the_o contrary_a to_o this_o be_v evident_a because_o no_o surety_n be_v require_v at_o the_o administration_n of_o private_a baptism_n where_o our_o baptismal_a office_n declare_v the_o child_n to_o be_v lawful_o and_o sufficient_o baptise_a and_o so_o those_o word_n can_v only_o intimate_v that_o this_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o a_o thing_n expedient_a must_v be_v practise_v according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o 5_o whereas_o it_o far_a be_v object_v that_o by_o these_o sponsor_n the_o parent_n be_v exclude_v and_o the_o child_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o baptism_n in_o the_o parent_n right_a answer_v to_o this_o it_o be_v judicious_o answer_v by_o the_o excellent_a dr._n still_o 381._o vnrens_fw-la of_o s●p●_n p._n 381._o that_o the_o church_n by_o require_v sponsor_n do_v not_o exclude_v any_o title_n to_o baptism_n which_o the_o child_n have_v by_o the_o right_n of_o his_o parent_n for_o the_o sponsor_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o appear_v in_o a_o threefold_a capacity_n 1._o as_o represent_v the_o parent_n in_o offer_v up_o the_o child_n to_o baptism_n and_o so_o whatever_o right_n the_o parent_n have_v that_o be_v challenge_v when_o the_o child_n be_v bring_v to_o be_v baptise_a 2_o as_o represent_v the_o child_n in_o the_o answer_n that_o be_v make_v in_o baptism_n and_o 3_o in_o their_o own_o capacity_n when_o they_o promise_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o good_a education_n of_o the_o child_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 3_o 404._o ibid_fw-la p._n 404._o this_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n for_o the_o answer_v of_o the_o surety_n in_o baptism_n for_o as_o it_o be_v judicious_o observe_v by_o dr._n comber_n '_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n be_v always_o make_v by_o question_n and_o answer_n which_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o method_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n because_o st._n peter_n call_v baptism_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o we_o in_o prayer_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n and_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o occasion_n stand_v bind_v in_o conscience_n so_o to_o do_v as_o oft_o as_o by_o the_o magistrate_n you_o be_v require_v so_o to_o do_v and_o it_o can_v only_o be_v pretence_n of_o conscience_n which_o do_v induce_v you_o to_o forbear_v such_o communion_n with_o we_o at_o these_o time_n for_o see_v negative_a precept_n do_v bind_v always_o and_o at_o all_o time_n so_o that_o no_o man_n at_o any_o time_n may_v do_v what_o be_v forbid_v by_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o prohibition_n against_o do_v that_o at_o other_o time_n which_o we_o can_v sometime_o do_v and_o which_o can_v be_v more_o or_o less_o lawful_a or_o unlawful_a for_o be_v do_v at_o one_o time_n than_o another_o as_o clear_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o case_n with_o reference_n to_o your_o occasional_a communion_n it_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v that_o man_n only_o pretend_v conscience_n against_o that_o communion_n with_o we_o at_o all_o time_n which_o they_o at_o sometime_o can_v maintain_v and_o yet_o i_o wish_v there_o be_v no_o instance_n of_o man_n of_o your_o persuasion_n who_o when_o they_o be_v present_v or_o when_o they_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o qualify_v they_o for_o a_o office_n or_o to_o give_v a_o vote_n in_o which_o they_o may_v do_v service_n to_o their_o party_n will_v attend_v upon_o the_o public_a worship_n use_v in_o our_o church_n and_o will_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o fore_o never_o do_v and_o afterward_o neglect_v to_o do_v so_o now_o whilst_o man_n do_v thus_o vary_v in_o their_o practice_n according_a as_o their_o interest_n and_o as_o their_o circumstance_n vary_v they_o tempt_v man_n shrewd_o to_o suspect_v that_o they_o act_n rather_o out_o of_o interest_n than_o conscience_n in_o these_o matter_n and_o that_o they_o notwithstanding_o all_o their_o pretence_n to_o conscience_n have_v either_o none_o at_o all_o or_o a_o bad_a conscience_n for_o if_o they_o think_v communion_n with_o we_o in_o those_o ordinance_n unlawful_a by_o do_v it_o in_o the_o forementioned_a circumstance_n they_o only_o must_v be_v do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v and_o make_v conscience_n and_o religion_n stoop_v to_o interest_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a character_n of_o hypocrite_n but_o if_o they_o do_v conceive_v it_o lawful_a their_o separation_n and_o refusal_n of_o it_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o schism_n or_o from_o transgression_n of_o the_o injunction_n of_o st._n paul_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a as_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v live_v peaceable_o with_o all_o man_n follow_v after_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v for_o peace_n give_v no_o offence_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o god_n obey_v superior_n and_o submit_v yourselves_o ah_o my_o dear_a brethren_n by_o do_v of_o these_o thing_n you_o have_v give_v great_a scandal_n unto_o other_o than_o your_o submission_n to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v have_v do_v and_o therefore_o if_o you_o do_v indeed_o abstain_v from_o our_o commuon_n for_o fear_n of_o give_v scandal_n to_o weak_a brethren_n do_v you_o more_o careful_o abstain_v from_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o carry_v with_o they_o such_o a_o plain_a semblance_n of_o hypocrisy_n that_o no_o pretence_n can_v hide_v no_o charity_n excuse_v it_o under_o this_o head_n i_o can_v pass_v by_o your_o violence_n in_o petition_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n against_o his_o royal_a proclamation_n to_o the_o contrary_a for_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o the_o law_n do_v authorise_v or_o give_v permission_n to_o you_o to_o petition_v sure_o i_o be_o it_o lay_v upon_o you_o no_o necessity_n to_o do_v so_o and_o so_o this_o may_v have_v be_v forbear_v in_o compliance_n with_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o if_o you_o do_v reply_n that_o then_o you_o may_v by_o proclamation_n be_v abridge_v of_o that_o liberty_n the_o law_n afford_v you_o consider_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o it_o be_v that_o you_o expect_v and_o call_v for_o from_o superior_n viz._n that_o for_o your_o sake_n and_o out_o of_o pity_n to_o your_o weakness_n they_o will_v abate_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o own_o power_n and_o with_o what_o equity_n and_o justice_n can_v you_o expect_v they_o shall_v do_v this_o if_o you_o at_o their_o request_n will_v abate_v nothing_o of_o that_o liberty_n and_o power_n which_o the_o law_n allow_v you_o §_o 17_o 2._o if_o you_o can_v conform_v let_v i_o entreat_v you_o religious_o to_o abstain_v from_o censure_v reproach_v or_o speak_v evil_a of_o your_o governor_n in_o church_n or_o state_n for_o this_o undoubted_o you_o may_v do_v and_o it_o do_v very_o much_o concern_v you_o so_o to_o do_v for_o they_o who_o be_v christian_n do_v reproach_n and_o do_v speak_v evil_a of_o their_o civil_a governor_n do_v that_o which_o the_o wiseman_n will_v not_o permit_v the_o jew_n to_o think_v of_o for_o his_o command_n run_v thus_o 10.20_o eccles_n 10.20_o curse_v not_o the_o king_n in_o thy_o heart_n or_o entertain_v not_o any_o light_n vain_a contemptuous_a or_o dishonourable_a thought_n of_o he_o annot._n assemb_v annot._n wish_v thou_o no_o evil_n to_o his_o person_n crown_n or_o dignity_n in_o thy_o most_o secret_a retirement_n they_o do_v what_o all_o good_a man_n shall_v tremble_v to_o commit_v for_o of_o such_o man_n st._n peter_n give_v this_o character_n presumptuous_a be_v they_o 2.10_o 2_o pet._n 2.10_o self-willed_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o do_v not_o tremble_v when_o they_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n such_o person_n dare_v to_o offer_v that_o to_o god_n vicegerent_n to_o those_o who_o bear_v his_o name_n or_o character_n on_o earth_n which_o michael_n the_o archangel_n dare_v not_o offer_v to_o the_o vile_a and_o the_o worst_a of_o creature_n 9_o judas_n 8_o 9_o for_o he_o contend_v with_o the_o devil_n dare_v not_o bring_v against_o he_o a_o rail_a accusation_n and_o yet_o it_o well_o deserve_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o if_o this_o sin_n be_v capable_a of_o pardon_n or_o excuse_v in_o any_o case_n or_o circumstance_n it_o must_v have_v be_v so_o in_o the_o reproach_v of_o the_o then_o present_a governor_n they_o be_v by_o consent_n of_o all_o historian_n the_o great_a monster_n of_o mankind_n and_o the_o most_o bloody_a persecutor_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n moreover_o they_o who_o offend_v in_o the_o like_a kind_n against_o their_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n do_v that_o which_o bless_v paul_n when_o he_o have_v ignorant_o do_v to_o a_o corrupt_a highpriest_n acknowledge_v as_o a_o crime_n condemn_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n i_o wist_v not_o say_v he_o that_o he_o be_v the_o highpriest_n 23.5_o act_n 23.5_o for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n they_o do_v that_o which_o the_o conscience_n of_o a_o jew_n can_v not_o let_v pass_n without_o just_a indignation_n and_o reproof_n for_o when_o st._n paul_n have_v say_v god_n shall_v smite_v thou_o thou_o white_v wall_n 4._o v._o 3_o 4._o they_o present_o cry_v out_o revile_a thou_o god_n highpriest_n there_o lie_v indeed_o no_o obligation_n on_o we_o to_o call_v evil_a good_a or_o flatter_v our_o superior_n in_o their_o sin_n or_o judge_v well_o of_o they_o against_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o sense_n or_o reason_n but_o then_o we_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o cherish_v evil_a thought_n or_o harbour_v groundless_a jealousy_n of_o our_o superior_n much_o less_o must_v we_o express_v our_o inward_a apprehension_n of_o they_o by_o opprobrious_a language_n or_o disrespectful_a carriage_n towards_o they_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o too_o evident_a that_o both_o the_o write_n and_o discourse_n of_o dissenter_n be_v too_o often_o stuff_v with_o these_o malevolent_a reflection_n in_o which_o they_o take_v the_o liberty_n of_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o blaspheme_a dignity_n and_o represent_v the_o reverend_a bishop_n as_o popish_a antichristian_a and_o ithacian_a prelate_n §_o 18_o last_o let_v i_o conjure_v you_o by_o that_o affection_n which_o you_o bear_v unto_o the_o name_n and_o doctrine_n of_o our_o common_a lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o to_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n to_o abstain_v careful_o from_o all_o seditious_a and_o rebellious_a principle_n and_o practice_n and_o to_o do_v all_o you_o can_v to_o clear_v yourselves_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o maintain_v or_o approve_v of_o they_o for_o to_o deal_v plain_o with_o you_o this_o be_v one_o great_a fault_n among_o you_o that_o you_o have_v many_o of_o you_o vent_v and_o more_o of_o you_o have_v practise_v suitable_o to_o those_o opinion_n which_o be_v seditious_a and_o rebellious_a and_o these_o opinion_n
and_o as_o it_o grow_v more_o ancient_a its_o constitution_n grow_v more_o numerous_a and_o so_o the_o man_n of_o this_o opinion_n have_v they_o live_v then_o as_o they_o do_v not_o none_o that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o those_o time_n ever_o pretend_v separation_n from_o any_o church_n on_o these_o account_n they_o must_v have_v be_v oblige_v to_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n then_o in_o be_v come_v we_o to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o this_o present_a age_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o opinion_n will_v oblige_v the_o author_n of_o it_o to_o separate_v from_o they_o also_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n they_o must_v much_o more_o abominate_a on_o this_o account_n than_o any_o other_o because_o their_o ceremony_n be_v more_o numerous_a and_o many_o of_o they_o superstitious_a the_o lutheran_n church_n have_v not_o only_a liturgy_n and_o other_o ancient_a ceremony_n which_o we_o observe_v but_o they_o have_v also_o image_n &_o many_o other_o observation_n which_o these_o man_n style_v superstitious_a popish_a antichristian_a ceremony_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n they_o will_v find_v liturgy_n of_o humane_a invention_n and_o change_v of_o apparel_n for_o divine_a service_n even_o at_o geneva_n they_o will_v find_v enjoin_v a_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n compose_v by_o calvin_n the_o wafer_n cake_n the_o use_n of_o godfathers_n in_o baptism_n bid_v of_o prayer_n with_o divers_a other_o coremony_n no_o where_n command_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o so_o as_o dr._n durel_n large_o prove_v it_o be_v in_o all_o reform_a church_n of_o the_o west_n i_o be_o not_o able_a say_v mr._n baxter_n to_o bear_v the_o thought_n of_o separate_n from_o almost_o all_o christ_n church_n upon_o earth_n but_o he_o that_o separate_v from_o one_o or_o many_o 55._o def._n of_o the_o princip_n of_o love_n p._n 55._o upon_o a_o reason_n common_a to_o all_o do_v virtual_o separate_v from_o all_o since_o than_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o separate_n on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o principle_n be_v virtual_o condemn_v and_o separate_n from_o all_o the_o church_n of_o this_o and_o all_o precede_a age_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o author_n of_o it_o must_v renounce_v the_o principle_n or_o bear_v the_o blame_n both_o of_o condemn_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o age_n this_o tenet_n give_v a_o great_a advantage_n to_o popery_n for_o it_o assert_n that_o nothing_o circumstantial_a must_v be_v perform_v in_o god_n worship_n without_o particular_a direction_n from_o the_o word_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n which_o concern_v prayer_n preach_v of_o the_o word_n administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n church_n government_n the_o exercise_n of_o church_n discipline_n be_v not_o determine_v in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v needful_a if_o this_o principle_n be_v true_a either_o to_o own_o tradition_n touch_v matter_n of_o this_o nature_n to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o to_o confess_v he_o have_v appoint_v some_o infallible_a person_n whether_o pope_n or_o council_n it_o be_v not_o much_o material_a who_o determination_n in_o these_o matter_n must_v be_v receive_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n now_o these_o two_o tenet_n be_v the_o fundamental_a part_n of_o popery_n on_o which_o their_o other_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n depend_v and_o which_o if_o we_o admit_v we_o can_v rational_o reject_v whatsoever_o these_o infallible_a judge_n shall_v determine_v or_o deliver_v as_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o head_n with_o a_o large_a passage_n out_o of_o mr._n baxter_n who_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o his_o principle_n of_o love_n speak_v thus_o there_o be_v man_n otherwise_o very_o honest_a and_o true_o godly_a who_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v intend_v by_o god_n not_o only_o as_o a_o general_a rule_n but_o a_o particular_a law_n for_o all_o the_o very_a circumstance_n of_o worship_n and_o that_o the_o second_o commandment_n in_o particular_a condemn_v all_o that_o be_v the_o product_n or_o invention_n of_o man_n in_o or_o about_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o that_o to_o deny_v this_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o this_o opinion_n prevail_v say_v he_o what_o abundance_n of_o hurt_n will_v it_o do_v for_o 1._o it_o draw_v man_n into_o the_o dangerous_a guilt_n of_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n under_o pretence_n of_o defend_v its_o perfection_n and_o extent_n for_o what_o be_v add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o make_v that_o to_o be_v command_v or_o forbid_v by_o that_o word_n which_o be_v not_o there_o command_v or_o forbid_v since_o therefore_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o all_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o worship_n be_v not_o by_o that_o word_n prescribe_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v already_o whence_o it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o some_o necessary_a circumstance_n not_o there_o prescribe_v can_v be_v forbid_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o opinion_n which_o say_v that_o all_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n be_v particular_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o not_o prescribe_v be_v forbid_v there_o must_v add_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o it_o prepare_v man_n for_o infidelity_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o when_o man_n be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n must_v be_v a_o rule_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o it_o at_o all_o they_o must_v be_v tempt_v when_o they_o can_v find_v all_o accident_n of_o worship_n particular_o determine_v in_o it_o to_o suspect_v it_o as_o a_o delusory_a imperfect_a thing_n the_o divine_a will_v say_v it_o tell_v i_o not_o sufficient_o and_o particular_o what_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a nor_o which_o of_o the_o various_a readins_n be_v right_a nor_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o chapter_n and_o verse_n nor_o into_o how_o many_o nor_o in_o what_o metre_n and_o tune_n i_o must_v sing_v psalm_n nor_o what_o person_n shall_v be_v pastor_n of_o church_n nor_o what_o text_n i_o shall_v choose_v next_o nor_o what_o word_n or_o method_n i_o shall_v use_v in_o my_o next_o prayer_n or_o sermon_n 3_o this_o opinion_n which_o seem_v to_o plead_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n rule_n do_v plain_o charge_v it_o with_o imperfection_n and_o obscurity_n for_o it_o assert_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o perfection_n of_o this_o rule_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v prescribe_v every_o particular_a circumstance_n and_o mode_n of_o worship_n fit_a and_o requisite_a to_o be_v use_v in_o god_n service_n and_o it_o be_v far_a requisite_a that_o it_o shall_v do_v this_o clear_o in_o all_o the_o instance_n foremention_v since_o otherwise_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o we_o act_n in_o all_o these_o mode_n and_o circumstance_n according_a unto_o its_o direction_n now_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o have_v not_o do_v so_o in_o all_o the_o instance_n foremention_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o former_a argument_n since_o learned_a pious_a and_o judicious_a man_n can_v find_v no_o such_o determination_n there_o and_o therefore_o judge_v dispute_n and_o act_v so_o various_o in_o those_o matter_n because_o they_o find_v nothing_o deliver_v in_o those_o case_n with_o so_o great_a clearness_n and_o particularity_n as_o may_v determine_v they_o in_o all_o these_o case_n how_o to_o act_v i_o say_v this_o be_v so_o it_o must_v be_v evident_a that_o scripture_n can_v be_v according_a to_o this_o supposition_n a_o sufficient_a plain_a and_o perfect_a rule_n 4_o this_o mistake_n tend_v to_o cast_v all_o rational_a worship_n out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o deter_v man_n from_o invent_v or_o study_v how_o to_o do_v god_n work_v aright_o for_o if_o all_o that_o man_n invent_v or_o devise_v without_o a_o particular_a direction_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v forbid_v by_o it_o then_o must_v we_o not_o study_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a method_n of_o pray_v or_o preach_v nor_o must_v we_o study_v what_o to_o say_v till_o we_o be_v speak_v nor_o what_o time_n gesture_n place_n or_o word_n to_o use_v there_o be_v no_o particular_a direction_n for_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v only_o say_v in_o general_a study_v to_o show_v thyself_o a_o workman_n that_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a now_o banish_v study_n and_o you_o banish_v knowledge_n and_o rational_a religion_n from_o the_o world_n 5_o this_o opinion_n will_v bring_v in_o all_o confusion_n instead_o of_o pure_a reasonable_a worship_n whilst_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o find_v that_o in_o scripture_n which_o never_o be_v there_o one_o will_v think_v that_o he_o find_v one_o thing_n there_o and_o another_o
many_o other_o thing_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n which_o he_o most_o true_o say_v be_v all_o leave_v to_o humane_a determination_n 27.28_o ibid._n §._o 27.28_o and_o to_o humane_a prudence_n and_o yet_o according_a to_o his_o argument_n see_v no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o the_o determination_n of_o most_o of_o they_o will_v not_o be_v equal_o useful_a in_o all_o age_n and_o all_o church_n they_o must_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o a_o universal_a law_n if_o of_o any_o and_o so_o of_o a_o universal_a lawgiver_n and_o so_o can_v be_v leave_v to_o humane_a prudence_n or_o determination_n again_o when_o the_o same_o person_n argue_v against_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o ceremony_n thus_o 3._o disp_n 5._o chap._n 4._o §._o 3._o if_o these_o thing_n be_v needful_a now_o why_o not_o throughout_o all_o age_n and_o all_o church_n if_o therefore_o christ_n do_v neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o his_o apostle_n institute_n and_o impose_v these_o rite_n then_o either_o the_o impose_v of_o they_o be_v needless_a and_o consequent_o noxious_a or_o else_o you_o must_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v omit_v a_o needful_a part_n of_o his_o law_n which_o imply_v that_o he_o be_v either_o ignorant_a what_o to_o do_v or_o neglective_a of_o his_o affair_n this_o argument_n again_o condemn_v all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n who_o have_v always_o use_v some_o ceremony_n which_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n think_v fit_a to_o institute_v and_o 2_o it_o also_o render_v it_o unlawful_a for_o humane_a prudence_n to_o determine_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o say_v he_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v leave_v undetermined_a they_o be_v most_o such_o as_o be_v or_o may_v be_v equal_o useful_a in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o of_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v whensoever_o they_o be_v determine_v by_o humane_a prudence_n if_o they_o be_v needful_a now_o why_o not_o always_o etc._n etc._n chap._n v._o the_o content_n obj._n 5._o those_o ceremony_n which_o god_n himself_o appoint_v to_o teach_v his_o church_n by_o their_o signification_n may_v not_o now_o be_v use_v much_o less_o may_v those_o which_o man_n have_v devise_v §_o 1._o answ_n 1._o that_o as_o st._n paul_n submit_v to_o some_o jewish_a rite_n unlawful_o require_v by_o the_o jewish_a christian_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v the_o jew_n and_o minister_n to_o their_o salvation_n so_o may_v the_o christian_a submit_v to_o ceremony_n unfit_o impose_v by_o superior_n for_o like_v good_a end_n answ_n the_o second_o this_o argument_n offer_v nothing_o against_o sign_n natural_a and_o customary_a such_o as_o be_v kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n stand_v up_o at_o the_o creed_n but_o only_o against_o sign_n arbitrary_a from_o the_o impose_v of_o which_o the_o excellent_a bishop_n taylor_n do_v excuse_v our_o church_n §_o 2._o obj._n 6._o the_o use_n of_o the_o ceremony_n be_v superstitious_a and_o therefore_o can_v be_v submit_v to_o answ_n by_o state_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o superstition_n and_o show_v 1._o that_o superstition_n be_v a_o species_n of_o false_a worship_n and_o therefore_o where_o no_o worship_n be_v exhibit_v by_o the_o act_n do_v or_o intend_v by_o the_o doer_n or_o imposer_n of_o it_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o our_o ceremony_n there_o can_v be_v no_o superstition_n in_o that_o act._n 2_o that_o superstitious_a worship_n undue_a as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o can_v only_o be_v perform_v by_o offer_v that_o as_o acceptable_a and_o please_a to_o god_n or_o as_o a_o exercise_n of_o religion_n or_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o some_o of_o god_n perfection_n which_o be_v not_o so_o 3_o all_o superstition_n consist_v fundamental_o in_o this_o mistake_n and_o formal_o in_o the_o ensue_a practice_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o forbearance_n of_o a_o act_n upon_o the_o like_a mistake_n viz._n that_o we_o conceive_v it_o well-pleasing_a to_o god_n and_o tend_v to_o his_o honour_n to_o forbear_v it_o when_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o so_o be_v superstition_n §_o 3._o hence_o our_o dissenter_n must_v be_v superstitious_a provide_v that_o the_o rite_n that_o they_o refuse_v submission_n to_o be_v lawful_a in_o themselves_o 1._o because_o they_o do_v and_o must_v esteem_v this_o their_o refusal_n as_o a_o act_n of_o special_a honour_n do_v to_o god_n 2_o because_o they_o must_v esteem_v themselves_o by_o this_o forbearance_n preserver_n of_o god_n worship_n pure_a and_o spiritual_a 3_o because_o they_o must_v esteem_v themselves_o under_o a_o necessity_n of_o displease_v god_n by_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o we_o §_o 4._o §_o 5._o what_o be_v the_o true_a import_n of_o edification_n §_o 6._o obj._n 7._o we_o must_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o institution_n or_o introduction_n of_o new_a sacrament_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n they_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n §_o 7._o answ_n 1._o that_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o appoint_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n or_o to_o confirm_v grace_n to_o we_o 2_o that_o the_o design_v of_o these_o ceremony_n to_o express_v signify_v or_o bring_v into_o our_o mind_n spiritual_a duty_n can_v make_v they_o sacrament_n with_o reason_n why_o the_o representation_n of_o some_o spiritual_a duty_n by_o a_o mystical_a rite_n can_v as_o proper_o pertain_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n as_o the_o seal_v some_o spiritual_a promise_n do_v §_o 8._o many_o thing_n require_v in_o sacrament_n which_o be_v all_o want_v in_o our_o ceremony_n §_o 9_o mr._n baxter_n argument_n to_o prove_v the_o cross_n as_o use_v in_o our_o church_n a_o sacrament_n be_v answer_v §_o 10._o chap._n v._n but_o say_v dissenter_n obj._n 5_o if_o those_o ceremony_n which_o god_n himself_o ordain_v to_o teach_v his_o church_n by_o their_o signification_n may_v not_o now_o be_v use_v §_o 1_o much_o less_o may_v those_o which_o man_n have_v devise_v now_o god_n have_v abrogate_a his_o own_o not_o only_o those_o that_o be_v appoint_v to_o prefigure_v christ_n but_o such_o also_o as_o serve_v by_o their_o signification_n to_o teach_v moral_a duty_n and_o so_o as_o now_o without_o great_a sin_n none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n no_o not_o for_o signification_n and_o therefore_o to_o bring_v in_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n be_v to_o judaize_v to_o confirm_v this_o argument_n they_o add_v that_o if_o man_n may_v impose_v such_o ceremony_n because_o of_o their_o significancy_n they_o may_v reduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n all_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o jewish_a ceremony_n as_o v._o g._n 1._o those_o of_o moral_a signification_n as_o the_o not_o eat_v of_o blood_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o avoid_v cruelty_n towards_o the_o life_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n the_o not_o eat_v of_o unclean_a beast_n to_o denote_v our_o abhorrence_n of_o the_o impurity_n and_o immorality_n which_o by_o that_o abstinence_n the_o jew_n be_v teach_v to_o refrain_v from_o the_o not_o touch_v any_o thing_n unclean_a to_o mind_v we_o of_o avoid_v all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n to_o omit_v infinite_a instance_n of_o like_a nature_n 2_o by_o the_o like_a reason_n many_o jewish_a rite_n which_o be_v type_n and_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v may_v be_v reduce_v into_o the_o church_n upon_o other_o account_n as_o v._o g._n circumcision_n to_o mind_v we_o of_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o paschal_n lamb_n to_o signify_v our_o gratitude_n for_o pass_v from_o darkness_n unto_o light_n or_o from_o our_o spiritual_a thraldom_n unto_o sin_n into_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n all_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o all_o whereby_o they_o own_a god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n and_o death_n and_o all_o their_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o deserve_v to_o die_v for_o sin_n and_o all_o the_o jewish_a garment_n import_v spiritual_a duty_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o their_o priest_n with_o many_o thing_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n and_o indeed_o say_v bishop_n taylor_n if_o the_o church_n may_v add_v thing_n 7._o dust_n dub._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o r._n 20._o §_o 7._o or_o ritual_n of_o signification_n than_o the_o wall_n may_v be_v cover_v with_o the_o figure_n of_o dove_n sheep_n lamb_n serpent_n bird_n and_o the_o communion_n table_n with_o wine_n herb_n taper_n pigeon_n raisin_n hony_n milk_n and_o lamb_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n can_v invent_v but_o the_o manner_n of_o teach_v these_o truth_n by_o symbolical_a thing_n &_o action_n be_v too_o low_a too_o suspicious_a too_o dangerous_a to_o be_v mingle_v with_o divine_a liturgy_n christ_n may_v as_o he_o please_v consign_v his_o own_o good_a thing_n
have_v do_v so_o have_v they_o not_o be_v before_o these_o creature_n since_o the_o command_n run_v thus_o to_o worship_v he_o 9_o ps_n 99.5_o 9_o and_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o his_o footstool_n moreover_o how_o often_o do_v we_o find_v they_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v at_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o cloud_n or_o fire_n which_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o god_n presence_n when_o they_o see_v the_o fire_n fall_v and_o consume_v the_o burn_a offering_n they_o fall_v upon_o their_o face_n 1_o king_n 18_o 38_o 39_o when_o they_o see_v the_o fire_n of_o god_n come_v down_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o the_o house_n they_o bow_v themselves_o with_o their_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n 2_o chron._n 7.3_o and_o yet_o because_o they_o do_v this_o not_o to_o the_o cloud_n or_o fire_n but_o to_o god_n there_o can_v be_v no_o idolatry_n in_o this_o their_o action_n 4_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a that_o such_o a_o action_n as_o this_o be_v shall_v any_o way_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n for_o idolatry_n be_v false_a worship_n of_o a_o creature_n now_o where_o there_o be_v no_o worship_n of_o the_o creature_n as_o in_o this_o action_n there_o be_v not_o there_o can_v be_v no_o false_a worship_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o to_o evidence_n to_o every_o rational_a capacity_n that_o nothing_o use_v in_o the_o service_n of_o our_o church_n can_v rational_o be_v charge_v with_o any_o semblance_n of_o idolatry_n and_o manifest_v the_o great_a and_o signal_n difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o action_n of_o our_o church_n which_o our_o dissenter_n call_v idolatrous_a and_o those_o which_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o do_v accuse_v as_o such_o i_o lay_v down_o this_o distinction_n viz_o 1._o that_o we_o may_v kneel_v bow_v down_o or_o may_v perform_v like_o act_n of_o outward_a worship_n before_o any_o creature_n either_o so_o as_o to_o make_v that_o creature_n only_o the_o circumstance_n or_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o worship_n or_o else_o so_o as_o to_o make_v that_o creature_n the_o object_n of_o those_o act_n of_o worship_n when_o any_o creature_n be_v render_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n the_o mind_n do_v actual_o or_o virtual_o intend_v to_o worship_n or_o pay_v a_o act_n of_o reverence_n to_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v thus_o make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n but_o when_o the_o creature_n be_v only_o make_v the_o circumstance_n or_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o worship_n the_o mind_n intend_v to_o pay_v the_o act_n of_o worship_n only_o to_o another_o object_n in_o such_o a_o place_n or_o upon_o intimation_n or_o apprehension_n of_o the_o object_n which_o i_o worship_v which_o apprehension_n or_o intimation_n be_v cause_v by_o that_o creature_n thus_o when_o i_o come_v to_o common_a prayer_n read_v in_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o circumstance_n of_o place_n the_o hour_n of_o time_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o worship_n but_o god_n be_v the_o sole_a object_n of_o it_o when_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ave_fw-la mary_n bell_n the_o roman_n catholic_n begin_v his_o ave_fw-la mary_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v the_o object_n the_o bell_n be_v only_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o and_o when_o they_o then_o kneel_v down_o and_o bow_n they_o do_v not_o kneel_v unto_o the_o consecrate_a bell_n but_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n 2_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v we_o worship_v any_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v before_o we_o when_o we_o direct_v our_o outward_a worship_n to_o another_o object_n since_o on_o the_o same_o account_n the_o wiseman_n of_o the_o east_n who_o worship_v christ_n before_o the_o manger_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o pay_v their_o worship_n to_o the_o manger_n and_o they_o who_o meeting_n christ_n ride_v upon_o a_o ass_n salute_v he_o with_o their_o hosanna_n and_o bow_v towards_o he_o must_v also_o pay_v their_o worship_n to_o the_o ass_n and_o if_o upon_o appearance_n of_o the_o devil_n we_o shall_v fall_v upon_o our_o knee_n and_o beg_v of_o god_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o he_o we_o must_v be_v say_v to_o worship_v the_o very_a devil_n by_o that_o action_n moreover_o when_o we_o lift_v up_o our_o eye_n and_o voice_n to_o the_o heaven_n we_o also_o lift_v they_o up_o towards_o the_o cloud_n and_o star_n but_o will_v it_o follow_v thence_o that_o by_o so_o do_v we_o do_v not_o only_a worship_n god_n but_o the_o material_a heaven_n and_o those_o glorious_a light_n we_o see_v as_o be_v object_v by_o the_o pagan_n against_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o to_o say_v that_o protestant_n worship_v the_o altar_n or_o the_o eucharistick_a element_n because_o they_o worship_v god_n before_o they_o be_v to_o calumniate_v the_o protestant_n as_o ancient_o the_o heathen_n do_v the_o christian_n affirm_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o sun_n because_o they_o worship_v god_n towards_o the_o east_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n towards_o the_o rise_n sun_n wherefore_o to_o give_v a_o clear_a and_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o all_o the_o instance_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o dissenter_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o england_n guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n i_o say_v 1._o that_o when_o we_o bow_v towards_o the_o altar_n as_o we_o enter_v into_o or_o come_v out_o of_o the_o church_n chancel_n or_o chapel_n where_o we_o worship_v god_n the_o altar_n be_v not_o the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n but_o only_o a_o accidental_a circumstance_n of_o it_o for_o we_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o intend_v by_o this_o obeisance_n to_o do_v a_o act_n of_o worship_n to_o the_o communion_n table_n or_o any_o thing_n place_v there_o or_o elsewhere_o but_o to_o god_n alone_o for_o this_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v solemn_o declare_v in_o these_o word_n 7._o constit_fw-la and_o canon_n a.d._n 1640._o can._n 7._o whereas_o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n dedicate_v to_o his_o holy_a worship_n and_o therefore_o ought_v to_o mind_n we_o both_o of_o the_o greatness_n and_o goodness_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o acknowledgement_n thereof_o not_o only_o inward_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o also_o outward_o with_o our_o body_n must_v needs_o be_v pious_a in_o itself_o profitable_a to_o we_o and_o edify_v to_o other_o we_o therefore_o think_v it_o very_o meet_v and_o behoveful_a and_o hearty_o commend_v it_o to_o all_o good_a and_o well_o affect_v people_n member_n of_o this_o church_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o tender_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o say_a acknowledgement_n by_o do_v reverence_n and_o obeisance_n both_o at_o their_o come_n in_o and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o say_a church_n chancel_v or_o chapel_n according_a to_o the_o most_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n and_o of_o this_o church_n also_o for_o many_o year_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o revive_n therefore_o of_o this_o ancient_n and_o laudable_a custom_n we_o hearty_o commend_v to_o the_o serious_a consideration_n of_o all_o good_a people_n not_o with_o any_o intention_n to_o exhibit_v any_o religious_a worship_n to_o the_o communion_n table_n the_o east_n or_o church_n or_o any_o thing_n contain_v therein_o in_o so_o do_v or_o to_o perform_v the_o say_a gesture_n in_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n upon_o any_o opinion_n of_o a_o corporal_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o the_o holy_a table_n or_o in_o the_o mystical_a element_n but_o only_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n majesty_n and_o to_o give_v he_o alone_o that_o honour_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o no_o otherwise_o which_o canon_n as_o it_o declare_v this_o act_n of_o worship_n not_o to_o be_v give_v or_o intend_v to_o the_o altar_n so_o do_v it_o give_v we_o the_o true_a reason_n why_o it_o be_v accidental_o do_v towards_o the_o altar_n viz._n because_o it_o be_v perform_v at_o our_o entrance_n into_o the_o immediate_a place_n of_o worship_n to_o which_o entrance_n the_o altar_n stand_v opposite_a 2_o when_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n we_o be_v wont_v to_o bow_v that_o bow_v be_v not_o intend_v by_o we_o to_o the_o very_a name_n which_o be_v the_o occasion_n only_o of_o the_o worship_n by_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o he_o that_o be_v name_v and_o of_o our_o high_a obligation_n to_o he_o as_o be_v jesus_n a_o saviour_n to_o who_o therefore_o we_o address_v ourselves_o and_o recognize_v he_o as_o our_o only_a saviour_n by_o that_o especial_a and_o peculiar_a act_n of_o devotion_n so_o that_o the_o adoration_n then_o perform_v be_v whole_o and_o absolute_o direct_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n in_o these_o word_n 18_o constit_fw-la &_o can_v a._n 1603._o can_n 18_o when_o in_o time_n
by_o execute_v of_o they_o only_o shall_v rebuke_v the_o scorner_n which_o the_o wiseman_n forbid_v 9.8_o prov._n 9.8_o here_o then_o our_o savior_n rule_n seem_v to_o take_v place_n give_v not_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a unto_o dog_n 7.6_o matt._n 7.6_o lest_o they_o turn_v again_o and_o rend_v you_o such_o person_n ought_v therefore_o only_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o not_o entire_o and_o without_o exception_n excommunicate_v from_o the_o church_n 377._o prim._n christian_n part_v 3._o p._n 377._o to_o this_o effect_n it_o be_v observe_v by_o dr._n cave_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n relax_v the_o severity_n of_o their_o discipline_n when_o great_a multitude_n be_v concern_v or_o such_o person_n as_o be_v like_a to_o draw_v great_a number_n after_o they_o in_o this_o case_n say_v he_o they_o think_v it_o prudent_a and_o reasonable_a to_o deal_v with_o person_n by_o somewhat_o mild_a and_o gentle_a method_n lest_o by_o hold_v they_o to_o term_n of_o rigour_n and_o austerity_n they_o shall_v provoke_v they_o to_o fly_v off_o either_o to_o heathenism_n or_o to_o heresy_n this_o course_n st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o brethren_n take_v for_o as_o the_o concord_n of_o his_o colleague_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o unite_n the_o fraternity_n and_o heal_v the_o wound_n in_o the_o church_n require_v they_o 3._o 1_o necessitati_fw-la temporum_fw-la succubuisse_fw-la p._n 52._o §._o 3._o yield_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n and_o admit_v the_o lapse_v to_o communion_n upon_o tolerable_a hope_n of_o their_o true_a repentance_n 9_o 2_o ad_fw-la gentile_n see_v vias_fw-la &_o saecularia_fw-la opera_fw-la convertat_fw-la vel_fw-la ad_fw-la hereticos_fw-la &_o schismaticos_fw-la rejectus_fw-la ab_fw-la eccle._n transeat_fw-la ibid._n §._o 10._o v_o §._o 3_o 9_o lest_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o church_n they_o out_o of_o desperation_n shall_v fly_v back_o to_o the_o worldy_a or_o join_v with_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n say_v he_o do_v our_o brother_n 3_o cornelius_z yield_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n 6._o cornelius_n necessitati_fw-la succubuit_fw-la ibid._n §._o 6._o admit_v to_o communion_n plebis_fw-la maximam_fw-la partem_fw-la maximum_fw-la fratrûm_fw-la numerum_fw-la a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o common_a people_n or_o the_o brethren_n which_o separate_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o repentance_n of_o trophimus_n alone_o with_o who_o as_o they_o first_o separate_v they_o return_v moreover_o to_o this_o accord_v the_o judgement_n of_o st._n austin_n who_o declare_v that_o b._n 4_o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la salutaris_n à_fw-la multis_fw-la correptio_fw-la nisi_fw-la cum_fw-la ille_fw-la corripitur_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la sociam_fw-la multitudinem_fw-la cum_fw-la autem_fw-la idem_fw-la morbus_fw-la plurimos_fw-la occupaverit_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la bonis_fw-la restat_fw-la quàm_fw-la dolour_n &_o gemitus_fw-la contr._n epist_n parmen_fw-la l._n 3._o p._n 61._o b._n correption_n can_v be_v salutary_a when_o the_o offendor_n have_v many_o partner_n and_o that_o when_o the_o same_o disease_n have_v seize_v on_o many_o there_o remain_v no_o other_o remedy_n for_o good_a man_n to_o use_v but_o prayer_n and_o sigh_n and_o sorrow_n and_o again_o that_o when_o d._n 5_o et_fw-la revera_fw-la si_fw-la contagio_fw-la peccandi_fw-la multitudinem_fw-la invaserit_fw-la divinae_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la severa_fw-la misericordia_fw-la necessaria_fw-la est_fw-la nam_fw-la consilia_fw-la separationis_fw-la &_o inania_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o perniciosa_fw-la atque_fw-la sacrilega_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o impia_fw-la &_o superba_fw-la fiunt_fw-la &_o plus_fw-la perturbant_fw-la infirmos_fw-la bonos_fw-es quam_fw-la corrigunt_fw-la animosos_fw-la malos_fw-la ibid._n lit_fw-fr d._n the_o contagion_n of_o sin_n have_v cease_v the_o whole_a multitude_n the_o severe_a mercy_n of_o divine_a discipline_n be_v necessary_a for_o then_o all_o council_n of_o separation_n be_v vain_a pernicious_a wicked_a and_o sacrilegious_a because_o they_o will_v more_o disturb_v the_o pious_a that_o be_v weak_a then_o correct_v the_o wicked_a that_o be_v sturdy_a and_o to_o confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o st_n austin_n the_o 30._o 6_o synop_n pur._n theol._n disp_n 48_o §._o 30._o author_n of_o the_o dutch_a synopsis_n have_v observe_v that_o the_o prophet_n and_o pious_a priest_n among_o the_o jew_n do_v never_o in_o a_o general_a declension_n of_o the_o people_n recur_v to_o these_o severe_a method_n and_o 12.6_o and_o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la duris_fw-la remediis_fw-la locus_fw-la est_fw-la ubi_fw-la tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la in_o morbo_fw-la cubat_fw-la grot._fw-la 2_o cor._n 12.6_o grotius_n and_o estius_n observe_v from_o these_o word_n of_o st_n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o he_o be_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o revenge_v all_o disobedience_n when_o their_o obedience_n be_v fulfil_v that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o severe_a remedy_n when_o the_o disease_n have_v infect_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v force_v to_o yield_v to_o this_o necessity_n locum_fw-la esth_n in_o locum_fw-la because_o the_o offender_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v many_o 548.549_o compan_n to_o the_o temple_n part_n 4._o p._n 548.549_o they_o can_v not_o easy_o be_v excommunicate_v i_o conclude_v therefore_o with_o the_o judicious_a dr._n cumber_n that_o till_o man_n be_v so_o humble_a as_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v shame_n and_o undergo_v severity_n in_o this_o world_n that_o their_o soul_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o next_o we_o may_v advise_v they_o to_o private_a and_o particular_a act_n of_o mortification_n and_o repentance_n but_o it_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o impose_v they_o on_o this_o untractable_a generation_n since_o by_o impose_v they_o in_o these_o circumstance_n the_o church_n will_v make_v this_o holy_a mean_n of_o reformation_n rather_o despise_v then_o obey_v prop._n 8_o although_o it_o be_v the_o christian_n duty_n to_o withdraw_v from_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o scandalous_a professor_n and_o the_o disorderly_a walker_n yet_o be_v this_o only_a then_o a_o duty_n when_o we_o can_v serve_v no_o high_a end_n of_o piety_n or_o mercy_n in_o hold_v correspondence_n with_o they_o for_o he_o that_o do_v command_v we_o to_o withdraw_v from_o he_o that_o walk_v disorderly_a do_v leave_v it_o still_o our_o duty_n to_o admonish_v he_o as_o ae_z brother_n and_o therefore_o still_o to_o maintain_v that_o correspondence_n with_o he_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o admonition_n 15._o 2_o thess_n 3.14_o 15._o and_o to_o all_o other_o good_a endeavour_n to_o reclaim_v and_o gain_v our_o brother_n and_o therefore_o though_o our_o lord_n know_v well_o the_o obligation_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o the_o great_a scandal_n which_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n will_v take_v at_o his_o free_a converse_n with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n he_o do_v not_o only_o justify_v the_o fact_n as_o be_v do_v in_o order_n to_o their_o reformation_n and_o conversion_n but_o also_o represent_v it_o as_o a_o high_a duty_n and_o more_o incumbent_a on_o he_o than_o the_o avoid_v the_o familiarity_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o bid_v those_o pharisee_n who_o reckon_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o renounce_v all_o familiarity_n with_o such_o man_n learn_v what_o that_o mean_v i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n and_o though_o st._n paul_n permit_v not_o his_o corinthian_n to_o have_v any_o fellowship_n with_o unbeliever_n 9.13_o matt._n 9.13_o or_o go_v unto_o their_o idol_n temple_n or_o their_o feast_n yet_o he_o allow_v the_o come_n of_o the_o unbeliever_n into_o their_o assembly_n 14.23_o 1_o cor._n 14.23_o as_o be_v that_o which_o may_v be_v instrumental_a to_o his_o conviction_n and_o conversion_n and_o 25._o v._o 24_o 25._o which_o be_v more_o observable_a st._n judas_n speak_v of_o those_o impure_a dreamer_n who_o defile_v the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n say_v thus_o 8._o v._o 8._o these_o be_v spot_n in_o your_o feast_n of_o charity_n when_o they_o feast_v with_o you_o they_o therefore_o do_v intrude_v into_o these_o feast_n and_o consequent_o join_v with_o they_o at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o which_o these_o feast_n be_v a_o appendix_n and_o yet_o st._n judas_n prescribe_v no_o separation_n of_o the_o saint_n from_o these_o assembly_n on_o that_o account_n last_o though_o eli_n son_n be_v son_n of_o belial_n 12._o sam._n 1.2_o 12._o and_o know_v not_o the_o lord_n although_o they_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o abhor_v the_o offering_n of_o the_o lord_n 17._o v._o 17._o and_o therefore_o to_o neglect_v to_o come_v to_o shilo_n with_o they_o 24._o v._o 24._o yet_o be_v they_o also_o say_v to_o make_v the_o lord_n people_n to_o transgress_v viz._n by_o this_o neglect_n it_o therefore_o be_v the_o people_n duty_n still_o to_o attend_v upon_o these_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n though_o this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v under_o these_o circumstance_n without_o communion_n with_o these_o son_n of_o belial_n and_o minister_a
judgement_n and_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o and_o that_o great_a liberty_n man_n take_v to_o vent_v their_o private_a sentiment_n in_o prayer_n when_o they_o be_v not_o restrain_v that_o they_o shall_v honest_o be_v able_a to_o say_v amen_o to_o a_o conceive_a prayer_n whereas_o in_o a_o set_a form_n of_o liturgy_n this_o inconvenience_n be_v avoid_v see_v we_o know_v before_o hand_n to_o what_o we_o be_v to_o say_v amen_o and_o therefore_o if_o we_o do_v not_o like_v it_o may_v absent_v ourselves_o 3_o how_o can_v we_o solicit_v any_o person_n or_o persuade_v any_o stranger_n to_o come_v to_o our_o church_n or_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o we_o where_o we_o can_v promise_v they_o that_o the_o devotion_n to_o be_v use_v there_o shall_v be_v innocent_a we_o can_v show_v they_o how_o we_o worship_v god_n and_o thereby_o put_v they_o in_o a_o condition_n to_o judge_v for_o themselves_o or_o promise_v they_o as_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o may_v whilst_o prayer_n by_o the_o spirit_n last_v that_o all_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v agreeable_a unto_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n or_o how_o can_v this_o be_v do_v without_o produce_v some_o prescribe_a form_n by_o which_o we_o pray_v this_o seem_v to_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n have_v have_v their_o public_a form_n of_o prayer_n that_o they_o may_v let_v every-body_n know_v how_o god_n be_v serve_v by_o they_o and_o why_o the_o best_a man_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v wish_v those_o happy_a day_n may_v come_v 46._o thes_n salm._n de_fw-fr liturg._n part_n 3._o n._n 46._o in_o which_o the_o same_o form_n of_o divine_a worship_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o all_o her_o member_n with_o one_o heart_n and_o mouth_n may_v glorify_v god_n that_o so_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o charity_n among_o believer_n may_v be_v preserve_v as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v 4_o by_o set_a form_n many_o mischief_n be_v prevent_v to_o which_o conceive_v prayer_n do_v stand_v obnoxious_a for_o hereby_o care_n be_v take_v that_o nothing_o through_o the_o ignorance_n of_o some_o or_o the_o negligence_n of_o other_o shall_v be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n or_o unworthy_a of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n on_o which_o account_n it_o be_v long_o since_o resolve_v by_o the_o milevitan_a council_n 12._o cap._n 12._o that_o no_o prayer_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n but_o those_o which_o have_v be_v weigh_v by_o the_o most_o prudent_a or_o approve_v in_o a_o synod_n and_o this_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o heathen_n see_v whence_o plato_n advise_v 7._o de._n legibus_fw-la l._n 7._o that_o whatsoever_o prayer_n or_o hymn_n the_o poet_n compose_v to_o the_o god_n they_o shall_v first_o show_v they_o to_o the_o priest_n before_o they_o publish_v they_o lest_o they_o shall_v ask_v evil_a thing_n instead_o of_o good_a 17._o l._n 4._o c._n 17._o and_o alexander_n ab_fw-la alexandro_n say_v that_o the_o gentile_n read_v their_o prayer_n out_o of_o a_o book_n before_o their_o sacrifice_n ne_fw-la quid_fw-la preposterè_fw-la dicatur_fw-la that_o nothing_o may_v be_v speak_v preposterous_o which_o two_o may_v pass_v for_o christian_a reason_n as_o seasonable_a with_o we_o as_o they_o be_v among_o they_o these_o time_n be_v very_o subject_a to_o these_o infirmity_n as_o our_o experience_n have_v too_o sad_o find_v 5_o our_o saviour_n say_v 20._o matt._n 18.19_o 20._o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agree_v in_o the_o same_o voice_n to_o request_v any_o thing_n it_o shall_v be_v grant_v and_o the_o apostle_n pray_v 15.6_o rom._n 15.6_o that_o with_o one_o mouth_n as_o well_o as_o heart_n we_o may_v glorify_v god_n now_o sure_o there_o be_v more_o symphony_n in_o a_o good_a form_n of_o prayer_n joint_o put_v up_o by_o a_o whole_a nation_n than_o there_o will_v be_v in_o man_n extemporary_a effusion_n and_o in_o it_o we_o may_v be_v better_o say_v to_o glorify_v god_n with_o one_o mouth_n than_o by_o the_o great_a variety_n of_o prayer_n conceive_v and_o so_o the_o use_n of_o well_o compose_v form_n in_o public_a worship_n be_v upon_o this_o account_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o extemporary_a effusion_n and_o last_o to_o confess_v my_o own_o infirmity_n i_o find_v one_o great_a advantage_n in_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n that_o be_v natural_o thoughtful_a and_o apt_a to_o make_v deduction_n from_o what_o i_o read_v or_o hear_v i_o very_o often_o make_v some_o observation_n from_o the_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n of_o the_o day_n as_o i_o attend_v unto_o they_o and_o my_o thought_n eager_o pursue_v they_o my_o devotion_n be_v too_o often_o interrupt_v with_o wander_a thought_n which_o though_o they_o may_v be_v pious_a in_o themselves_o yet_o must_v be_v my_o infirmity_n as_o far_o as_o they_o withdraw_v my_o heart_n from_o diligent_a attention_n to_o the_o prayer_n than_o put_v up_o to_o god_n now_o when_o this_o happen_v to_o i_o whilst_o other_o be_v use_v their_o conceive_a prayer_n i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v the_o desire_v i_o have_v neglect_v and_o so_o i_o can_v when_o i_o recall_v myself_o offer_v up_o those_o desire_n to_o god_n beg_v his_o pardon_n for_o my_o wander_n but_o when_o i_o find_v my_o thought_n thus_o wander_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o church_n service_n i_o present_o recollect_v where_o they_o begin_v to_o wander_v what_o the_o petition_n be_v which_o thus_o escape_v i_o and_o either_o present_o if_o i_o have_v any_o opportunity_n or_o when_o i_o make_v up_o my_o account_n with_o god_n in_o my_o retirement_n i_o humble_o offer_v they_o up_o to_o god_n beseech_v his_o forgiveness_n of_o my_o wander_a thought_n this_o to_o i_o seem_v a_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n make_v to_o my_o good_a god_n and_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n to_o my_o mind_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o other_o may_v think_v of_o it_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o small_a advantage_n of_o a_o form_n above_o a_o new_a conceive_a prayer_n though_o no_o man_n that_o i_o know_v of_o have_v take_v any_o notice_n of_o it_o since_o therefore_o by_o the_o use_n of_o form_n we_o may_v best_o pray_v with_o understanding_n and_o more_o secure_o and_o assure_o may_v join_v with_o he_o that_o do_v officiate_v and_o say_v amen_o to_o his_o petition_n since_o hereby_o other_o may_v be_v assure_v beforehand_o that_o they_o can_v join_v sincere_o with_o we_o in_o the_o public_a service_n and_o may_v particular_o prepare_v their_o heart_n beforehand_o so_o to_o do_v see_v hereby_o the_o benefit_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o symphony_n of_o her_o petition_n be_v best_a acquire_v and_o both_o people_n and_o minister_n may_v be_v relieve_v best_a against_o their_o various_a distraction_n and_o see_v hereby_o all_o unbecoming_a scandalous_a expression_n which_o disturb_v the_o most_o devout_a and_o minister_v occasion_n of_o derision_n to_o the_o loose_a christian_a be_v in_o the_o most_o considerable_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o divine_a worship_n best_o prevent_v see_v a_o form_n may_v be_v use_v no_o probability_n of_o any_o prohibition_n of_o they_o be_v make_v apparent_a and_o christian_n stand_v bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o superior_n in_o lawful_a matter_n see_v a_o form_n must_v be_v use_v in_o our_o public_a prayer_n by_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n command_v to_o say_v our_o father_n and_o in_o our_o public_a hymn_n and_o psalmody_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o inability_n to_o conceive_v they_o sudden_o and_o last_o see_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n have_v constant_o use_v form_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o her_o public_a service_n for_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n upon_o all_o these_o account_n i_o think_v it_o be_v highy_v convenient_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n especial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o our_o church_n do_v not_o whole_o exclude_v the_o use_n of_o any_o minister_n pretend_a gift_n in_o this_o kind_n but_o give_v he_o liberty_n to_o use_v it_o both_o before_o 48._o dr._n whitnal_n of_o gift_n in_o public_a worship_n p._n 48._o and_o after_o sermon_n provide_v we_o acknowledge_v this_o habit_n to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o use_v it_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n with_o reverence_n to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o care_v we_o speak_v not_o unadvised_o of_o he_o or_o to_o he_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n with_o sobriety_n modesty_n peaceableness_n and_o order_n so_o as_o not_o to_o disturb_v or_o divide_v the_o church_n by_o bring_v thereby_o the_o public_a and_o state_v order_n into_o disesteem_a and_o final_o with_o justice_n to_o ourselves_o and_o the_o common_a christianity_n so_o as_o not_o to_o make_v this_o the_o sole_a way_n of_o pray_v in_o a_o due_a or_o
all_o person_n to_o obey_v those_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o they_o 13.17_o heb._n 13.17_o and_o submit_v themselves_o 2.13_o rom._n 13.1.5_o 1_o pet._n 2.13_o and_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n as_o to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o that_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o the_o lord_n sake_n he_o that_o can_v satisfy_v his_o conscience_n in_o his_o refusal_n so_o to_o do_v must_v show_v some_o law_n of_o god_n as_o evident_o forbid_v his_o obedience_n to_o what_o superious_a do_v enjoin_v 197._o p._n 197._o as_o do_v these_o scripture_n command_v obedience_n to_o they_o in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n i_o have_v therefore_o in_o this_o treatise_n answer_v all_o your_o pretence_n for_o such_o a_o prohibition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n forbid_v your_o submission_n to_o the_o rite_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n enjoin_v by_o superior_n have_v make_v it_o manifest_v that_o you_o can_v never_o satisfy_v your_o conscience_n in_o your_o refusal_n to_o submit_v unto_o they_o nor_o can_v you_o or_o your_o leader_n return_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n propound_v by_o that_o author_n to_o you_o in_o these_o word_n 58._o p._n 58._o do_v they_o prefer_v mercy_n before_o sacrifice_n or_o comply_v with_o the_o forementioned_a injunction_n of_o obedience_n to_o their_o superior_n who_o will_v not_o submit_v to_o rite_n or_o circumstance_n or_o to_o the_o use_n of_o thing_n no_o where_n forbid_v in_o the_o word_n to_o prevent_v schism_n and_o all_o the_o dreadful_a consequence_n of_o it_o but_o rather_o will_v give_v cause_n to_o their_o superior_n to_o judge_v they_o scandalous_a resister_n of_o authority_n and_o pertinacious_a disturber_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n 59_o 59_o do_v not_o they_o scandalize_v offend_v and_o contribute_v unto_o the_o ruin_n of_o christ_n little_a stock_n who_o do_v involve_v they_o in_o a_o wretched_a schism_n on_o the_o account_n of_o thing_n which_o they_o may_v lawful_o submit_v to_o do_v not_o they_o shut_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n against_o man_n who_o forbid_v they_o to_o enter_v when_o they_o may_v do_v not_o they_o impose_v heavy_a burden_n also_o who_o say_v to_o their_o disciple_n hear_v not_o the_o common_a prayer_n receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n kneel_v suffer_v not_o your_o child_n to_o be_v sign_v with_o the_o cross_n communicate_v not_o with_o that_o minister_n who_o wear_v a_o surplice_n or_o with_o that_o church_n which_o impose_v any_o ceremony_n or_o any_o constitution_n but_o concern_v the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o perform_v public_a worship_n if_o nothing_o do_v so_o scandalize_v christ_n follower_n as_o to_o find_v their_o teacher_n at_o discord_n and_o divide_v can_v they_o act_v as_o become_v his_o disciple_n who_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o procure_v unity_n and_o concord_n and_o to_o avoid_v this_o scandal_n by_o their_o submission_n to_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o not_o forbid_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n §_o 2_o three_o he_o plead_v for_o this_o submission_n from_o that_o great_a rule_n of_o equity_n which_o call_v upon_o you_o to_o do_v to_o other_o as_o you_o will_v be_v deal_v with_o put_v the_o question_n to_o you_o thus_o 187._o p._n 187._o do_v not_o you_o expect_v obedience_n from_o your_o child_n and_o servant_n in_o like_a case_n shall_v you_o command_v they_o to_o come_v at_o ten_o of_o the_o clock_n into_o your_o parlour_n to_o family_n devotion_n require_v they_o to_o come_v dress_v and_o to_o kneel_v at_o their_o devotion_n will_v you_o permit_v they_o to_o refuse_v to_o come_v at_o the_o time_n and_o to_o the_o place_n appoint_v because_o all_o time_n and_o place_n be_v indifferent_a to_o god_n or_o in_o the_o garb_n appoint_v by_o you_o because_o god_n regard_v not_o habit_n or_o to_o refuse_v to_o kneel_v because_o they_o may_v pray_v stand_v will_v you_o not_o rather_o judge_v they_o contemner_n of_o your_o lawful_a authority_n and_o needless_o and_o sinful_o scrupulous_a in_o those_o matter_n and_o must_v not_o you_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n be_v guilty_a of_o contemn_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o your_o civil_a and_o spiritual_a father_n and_o of_o the_o master_n of_o christ_n family_n by_o your_o refusal_n to_o submit_v unto_o their_o constitution_n in_o matter_n of_o like_a nature_n upon_o the_o like_a account_n or_o can_v those_o principle_n derive_v from_o he_o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o order_n not_o of_o confusion_n 15.33_o 1_o cor._n 15.33_o which_o will_v so_o evident_o shall_v they_o obtain_v fill_v family_n as_o well_o as_o kingdom_n and_o church_n with_o confusion_n and_o destroy_v their_o order_n §_o 3_o four_o he_o argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la thus_o if_o notwithstanding_o the_o evidence_n produce_v 289._o p._n 289._o that_o baptism_n by_o immersion_n be_v suitable_a both_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o be_v by_o they_o ordain_v to_o represent_v our_o burial_n with_o christ_n and_o so_o our_o die_a unto_o sin_n 2.12_o rom._n 6.4_o coloss_n 2.12_o and_o our_o conformity_n to_o his_o resurrection_n by_o newness_n of_o life_n as_o the_o apostle_n clear_o do_v explain_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o rite_n i_o say_v if_o notwithstanding_o this_o dissenter_n do_v agree_v to_o sprinkle_v the_o baptize_v infant_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o submit_v to_o the_o significant_a ceremony_n impose_v by_o our_o church_n for_o since_o it_o be_v as_o lawful_a to_o add_v unto_o christ_n institution_n a_o significant_a ceremony_n as_o to_o diminish_v a_o significant_a ceremony_n which_o he_o or_o his_o apostle_n institute_v and_o use_v another_o in_o its_o stead_n which_o they_o do_v never_o institute_v what_o reason_n can_v they_o have_v to_o do_v the_o latter_a and_o yet_o refuse_v submission_n to_o the_o former_a and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o prevail_v with_o they_o to_o perform_v the_o one_o as_o be_v their_o mercy_n to_o the_o infant_n body_n to_o neglect_v the_o other_o and_o §_o 4_o five_o the_o say_a author_n show_v that_o our_o division_n do_v high_o prejudice_v the_o christian_a faith_n 1._o chap._n 1._o that_o they_o gratify_v the_o infidel_n and_o sceptic_a and_o scandalize_v the_o weak_a and_o doubt_a christian_a that_o they_o minister_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n that_o they_o be_v high_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o state_n that_o they_o have_v a_o pernicious_a influence_n upon_o ourselves_o by_o promote_a strife_n enmity_n carnality_n and_o all_o the_o evil_n consequent_a upon_o they_o by_o obstruct_v the_o love_n peace_n unity_n order_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o prayer_n by_o hinder_v the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n by_o deprive_v we_o of_o all_o the_o blessing_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n and_o by_o endanger_v our_o eternal_a peace_n and_o hence_o he_o strong_o do_v infer_v that_o if_o dissenter_n do_v not_o think_v it_o better_o that_o all_o these_o evil_n shall_v ensue_v than_o that_o they_o shall_v comply_v or_o bear_v with_o those_o few_o ceremony_n 22._o p._n 22._o and_o scruple_v expression_n of_o our_o liturgy_n then_o must_v they_o in_o these_o matter_n submit_v to_o the_o command_n of_o their_o superior_n and_o p._n 29._o he_o put_v this_o serious_a question_n to_o dissenter_n whether_o those_o ceremony_n and_o those_o expression_n in_o our_o liturgy_n which_o they_o at_o present_a scruple_n be_v so_o plain_o evil_a and_o so_o unquestionable_o forbid_v that_o for_o prevent_v all_o these_o dreadful_a evil_n they_o may_v not_o be_v comply_v with_o add_v that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o so_o clear_o and_o indispensable_o evil_a that_o these_o great_a end_n of_o the_o promote_a the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o the_o prevent_n of_o the_o foremention_v evil_n which_o do_v inevitable_o ensue_v upon_o they_o can_v hallow_v they_o they_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o be_v accessary_a to_o those_o evil_n which_o ensue_v upon_o their_o separate_n from_o and_o their_o divide_v of_o the_o church_n on_o these_o account_n now_o that_o dissenter_n can_v rational_o judge_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v thus_o clear_o and_o indispensable_o evil_a or_o think_v it_o better_o that_o all_o these_o mischief_n shall_v ensue_v than_o that_o they_o shall_v submit_v unto_o they_o he_o seem_v convince_o to_o prove_v from_o these_o consideration_n 1._o 170._o chap._n 6._o §._o 1._o from_o p._n 167._o to_o p._n 170._o that_o the_o duty_n of_o promote_a christian_a love_n peace_n unity_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o prevent_n of_o division_n schism_n and_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n be_v moral_a and_o essential_a duty_n which_o will_v admit_v no_o dispensation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n
before_o we_o venture_v upon_o that_o which_o be_v by_o most_o judicious_a person_n in_o this_o age_n and_o be_v by_o all_o the_o primitive_a father_n of_o the_o church_n pronounce_v schismatical_a as_o be_v all_o altar_n set_v up_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n wherein_o they_o be_v all_o church_n separate_v from_o and_o independent_a on_o his_o government_n this_o therefore_o can_v prudent_o be_v do_v by_o we_o nor_o can_v we_o when_o we_o find_v it_o do_v by_o other_o safe_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o without_o plain_a evidence_n and_o full_a conviction_n of_o our_o freedom_n from_o that_o guilt_n and_o sure_o he_o must_v have_v a_o very_a good_a opinion_n of_o himself_o who_o confident_o dare_v to_o say_v he_o have_v plain_a evidence_n that_o what_o all_o christian_n of_o former_a age_n and_o the_o most_o able_a and_o judicious_a person_n of_o the_o present_a age_n pronounce_v a_o schism_n be_v indeed_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o good_a and_o pious_a christian_n now_o to_o confirm_v this_o motive_n let_v i_o request_v you_o to_o weigh_v these_o follow_a question_n well_o q._n 1_o if_o schism_n in_o the_o general_n be_v of_o a_o dreadful_a and_o pernicious_a nature_n whether_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n by_o erect_v opposite_a communion_n to_o the_o perpetuate_a schism_n through_o all_o succeed_a generation_n will_v not_o much_o aggravate_v the_o guilt_n of_o it_o and_o render_v it_o more_o dreadful_a to_o every_o peaceable_a and_o pious_a christian_n consider_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o this_o if_o any_o be_v your_o schism_n q._n 2_o who_o will_v not_o think_v it_o safe_a to_o yield_v to_o any_o imposition_n how_o heavy_a or_o how_o inconvenient_a soever_o provide_v that_o it_o be_v not_o plain_o sinful_a than_o run_v the_o hazard_n of_o contract_v such_o a_o pernicious_a guilt_n to_o choose_v to_o hazard_v our_o exclusion_n from_o the_o body_n the_o communion_n of_o christ_n church_n the_o privilege_n of_o her_o ordinance_n rather_o than_o yield_v unto_o a_o constitution_n not_o direct_o sinful_a be_v certain_o a_o great_a imprudence_n for_o see_v in_o matter_n of_o practice_n the_o dangerousness_n as_o well_o as_o the_o falsehood_n of_o a_o assertion_n be_v very_o fit_o and_o conscientious_o to_o be_v consider_v especial_o when_o the_o danger_n be_v of_o offend_a god_n and_o ruine_v our_o soul_n can_v it_o be_v prudent_a to_o venture_v upon_o that_o which_o if_o perform_v without_o good_a ground_n will_v certain_o expose_v we_o to_o that_o danger_n where_o there_o appear_v no_o such_o evident_a conviction_n for_o the_o do_v of_o it_o as_o can_v make_v amends_o for_o the_o danger_n of_o venture_v on_o it_o q._n 3_o be_v it_o not_o reasonable_a to_o conceive_v that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v lay_v down_o rule_n for_o the_o government_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o body_n proportionable_o plain_a unto_o the_o moment_n of_o they_o and_o give_v we_o a_o full_a evidence_n in_o matter_n absolute_o needful_a to_o be_v do_v or_o lest_o undo_v if_o then_o you_o only_o have_v some_o probability_n and_o plausible_a pretence_n for_o set_v up_o or_o join_v with_o these_o separate_a communion_n or_o against_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o we_o but_o have_v no_o evident_a conviction_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o other_o may_v you_o not_o rational_o conclude_v that_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v be_v needful_a to_o be_v do_v in_o order_n to_o your_o everlasting_a welfare_n when_o then_o our_o action_n tend_v so_o much_o unto_o the_o prejudice_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o to_o the_o damage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o do_v our_o present_a schism_n it_o be_v argument_n sufficient_a that_o god_n never_o intend_v to_o oblige_v we_o to_o it_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o no_o clear_a conviction_n of_o that_o obligation_n q._n 4_o last_o will_v any_o prudent_a legislator_n think_v it_o convenient_a for_o the_o public_a that_o his_o great_a and_o most_o important_a command_n shall_v be_v neglect_v as_o often_o as_o there_o may_v appear_v some_o little_a probable_a evidence_n for_o some_o lesser_a duty_n that_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o they_o will_v he_o not_o think_v you_o be_v much_o better_o please_v with_o he_o that_o in_o such_o a_o case_n shall_v stick_v to_o the_o great_a duty_n and_o neglect_v the_o less_o than_o with_o he_o who_o shall_v extreme_o prejudice_v the_o public_a by_o his_o adherence_n to_o his_o scruple_n about_o little_a matter_n and_o if_o so_o can_v it_o reflect_v dishonour_n upon_o god_n to_o presume_v he_o also_o please_v with_o that_o which_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v will_v please_v a_o good_a and_o prudent_a governor_n in_o regard_n of_o its_o good_a influence_n on_o the_o public_a for_o which_o he_o be_v especial_o concern_v §_o 7_o to_o these_o convince_a argument_n collect_v from_o that_o author_n i_o add_v these_o follow_a conderation_n first_o that_o st_n paul_n seem_v clear_o to_o insinuate_v that_o a_o wilful_a departure_n from_o ordinary_a practice_n in_o such_o case_n as_o these_o be_v do_v argue_v a_o contentious_a disposition_n for_o when_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o dispute_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n whether_o their_o woman_n shall_v be_v veil_v or_o cover_v in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o he_o argue_v for_o their_o be_v veil_v from_o decency_n and_o the_o design_n of_o nature_n in_o give_v hair_n unto_o they_o for_o a_o cover_n and_o thus_o conclude_v his_o argument_n if_o any_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o be_v contentious_a so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v import_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o contend_v for_o the_o appearance_n of_o woman_n in_o the_o church_n unveil_v contend_v against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n 11.16_o 1_o cor._n 11.16_o for_o we_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o custom_n and_o if_o by_o this_o he_o will_v not_o be_v conclude_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o lover_n of_o contention_n why_o therefore_o may_v it_o not_o be_v say_v to_o you_o if_o you_o be_v mind_v to_o contend_v for_o sit_v at_o the_o sacrament_n for_o baptise_v without_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o without_o godfathers_n and_o godmothers_n for_o pray_v without_o a_o stint_a liturgy_n in_o public_a and_o without_o a_o surplice_n and_o for_o separate_v on_o the_o account_n of_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n impose_v we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o if_o by_o this_o you_o will_v not_o be_v conclude_v in_o these_o matter_n how_o will_v you_o escape_v the_o charge_n of_o be_v lover_n of_o contention_n and_o suitable_a to_o this_o determination_n of_o st_n paul_n be_v both_o the_o practice_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n st_n austin_n true_o say_v presb_n ep._n 86._o ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la presb_n that_o in_o those_o matter_n concern_v which_o the_o scripture_n have_v deliver_v nothing_o certain_a the_o custom_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o our_o ancestor_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o law_n 118._o epist_n 118._o and_o again_o all_o matter_n of_o this_o kind_n may_v free_o be_v observe_v nor_o can_v a_o grave_n and_o prudent_a christian_a observe_v a_o better_a discipline_n ibid._n ad_fw-la quam_fw-la fortè_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la veneris_fw-la ejus_fw-la morem_fw-la serva_fw-la si_fw-la cviquam_fw-la non_fw-la vis_fw-la esse_fw-la scandalo_fw-la nec_fw-la quenquam_fw-la tibi_fw-la ibid._n than_o in_o these_o matter_n to_o act_v according_a to_o that_o custom_n which_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o church_n to_o which_o he_o come_v and_o thus_o st._n ambrose_n do_v himself_o practice_v advise_v other_o to_o whatsoever_o church_n they_o come_v to_o observe_v its_o custom_n if_o they_o will_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v offence_n §_o 8_o second_o consider_v that_o the_o same_o apostle_n command_v all_o christian_n to_o give_v no_o offence_n to_o jew_n or_o gentile_a or_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v 10.32_o 1_o cor._n 10.32_o as_o one_o well_o descant_v on_o the_o place_n whatsoever_o without_o prejudice_n to_o christian_a piety_n you_o can_v perform_v or_o leave_v undo_v be_v careful_a for_o the_o avoid_n of_o offence_n to_o jew_n or_o gentile_a and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o do_v or_o to_o abstain_v from_o do_v now_o do_v not_o you_o my_o friend_n conceive_v yourselves_o oblige_v to_o abstain_v from_o do_v of_o the_o thing_n enjoin_v though_o lawful_a in_o themselves_o because_o they_o minister_v unto_o the_o scandal_n of_o weak_a brethren_n why_o therefore_o shall_v you_o not_o much_o more_o conceive_v yourselves_o oblige_v to_o do_v they_o on_o the_o like_a supposition_n that_o you_o may_v not_o transgress_v
and_o lowliness_n of_o mind_n such_o calm_a and_o deliberate_v long_a suffering_n and_o forbearance_n of_o one_o another_o in_o love_n with_o such_o due_a esteem_n of_o those_o who_o thou_o have_v set_v over_o we_o to_o watch_v for_o our_o soul_n as_o may_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n to_o the_o father_n that_o so_o we_o may_v become_v a_o ready_a people_n prepare_v to_o live_v in_o peace_n and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n may_v be_v with_o we_o amen_n advertisement_n through_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o bookseller_n and_o printer_n this_o book_n have_v be_v detain_v otherwise_o it_o may_v have_v come_v out_o six_o month_n soon_o chap._n i._n the_o content_n the_o design_n of_o this_o treatise_n be_v to_o persuade_v our_o dissent_v laity_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o maintain_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 1._o because_o she_o require_v nothing_o in_o her_o public_a worship_n which_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v 2_o because_o they_o can_v condemn_v her_o communion_n without_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n §_o 1._o 3_o because_o they_o can_v do_v it_o without_o contradict_v the_o practice_n and_o example_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o jewish_a national_a church_n §_o 2._o 2ly_n observe_v the_o time_n of_o public_a prayer_n §_o 3._o 3_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o synagogue_n at_o nazareth_n §_o 4._o 4ly_n observe_v the_o custom_n which_o by_o the_o jewish_a canon_n be_v prescribe_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o those_o who_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n §_o 5._o 5ly_n comply_v with_o the_o rule_v prescribe_v by_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o reader_n &_o preacher_n in_o their_o synagogue_n §_o 6._o 6ly_n observe_v the_o custom_n in_o which_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n vary_v from_o or_o add_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o passover_n §_o 7._o 8ly_n admit_v judas_n both_o to_o the_o passover_n and_o to_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o declare_v that_o communion_n with_o the_o professor_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v refuse_v for_o their_o want_n of_o inward_a piety_n §_o 8._o 9ly_n pay_v tribute_n when_o it_o be_v not_o due_a and_o thereby_o teach_v we_o to_o submit_v unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v require_v by_o superior_n without_o sufficient_a ground_n in_o case_n of_o scandal_n §_o 9_o 10ly_n our_o lord_n command_n be_v suitable_a to_o his_o practice_n for_o first_o he_o command_v the_o leper_n to_o show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n tho'_o both_o the_o priesthood_n be_v degenerate_v and_o many_o idle_a thing_n require_v of_o he_o who_o be_v to_o be_v pronounce_v clean_o 2_o he_o command_v even_o his_o own_o disciple_n to_o obey_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n because_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n §_o 10._o corollary_n 1._o that_o corruption_n allow_v teach_v and_o practise_v in_o a_o church_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n provide_v that_o the_o member_n of_o it_o be_v not_o require_v as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n with_o they_o to_o do_v teach_v practise_v they_o or_o to_o profess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o corruption_n §_o 11._o 2ly_n that_o great_a corruption_n in_o the_o life_n of_o our_o church-pastor_n will_v not_o warrant_v our_o separation_n from_o communion_n with_o they_o or_o our_o refusal_n to_o attend_v upon_o their_o teach_v provide_v we_o be_v not_o enjoin_v to_o allow_v of_o or_o to_o comply_v with_o they_o in_o their_o sin_n §_o 12._o 3_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o comply_v which_o such_o church_n as_o enjoin_v some_o significant_a ceremony_n not_o mention_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o peace_n order_n unity_n and_o the_o avoid_n of_o scandal_n to_o submit_v unto_o they_o when_o by_o authority_n they_o be_v enjoin_v §_o 13._o 4ly_n that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o use_v a_o public_a form_n of_o prayer_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o such_o form_n can_v be_v no_o sinful_a stint_n of_o the_o spirit_n §_o 14._o 5ly_n that_o we_o stand_v not_o oblige_v in_o all_o punctilio_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o gesture_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n §_o 15._o 6ly_n that_o the_o presence_n of_o wicked_a man_n shall_v not_o deter_v we_o from_o join_v with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n §_o 16._o 7ly_n that_o we_o stand_v not_o oblige_v to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o other_o church_n in_o their_o sacrament_n and_o other_o public_a office_n because_o of_o some_o addition_n to_o the_o institution_n §_o 17._o 7ly_n that_o our_o dissenter_n have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v or_o plead_v for_o that_o refusal_n of_o submission_n to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n and_o of_o communion_n with_o we_o that_o by_o communicate_v municate_v they_o shall_v approve_v of_o the_o impose_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o shall_v partake_v with_o they_o in_o that_o suppose_a sin_n or_o countenance_v they_o in_o the_o impose_v thing_n which_o they_o do_v look_v upon_o as_o grievous_a burden_n §_o 18._o chap._n i._n §_o 1_o my_o design_n in_o this_o discourse_n be_v with_o all_o the_o strength_n of_o reason_n i_o can_v offer_v to_o persuade_v our_o dissent_v laity_n that_o lawful_o they_o may_v and_o therefore_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o all_o her_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n to_o prove_v that_o lawful_o they_o may_v i_o may_v insist_v on_o many_o topic_n as_o 1._o that_o which_o do_v throw_v the_o burden_n of_o prove_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o hold_v communion_n with_o we_o in_o the_o forementioned_a worship_n upon_o they_o and_o of_o this_o nature_n be_v the_o follow_a argument_n viz._n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n which_o in_o those_o part_n of_o public_a worship_n require_v nothing_o which_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v by_o those_o who_o shall_v communicate_v with_o she_o in_o they_o but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o all_o her_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n require_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v by_o those_o who_o shall_v communicate_v with_o she_o in_o they_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o all_o her_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n where_o by_o the_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n i_o understand_v those_o part_n of_o public_a worship_n which_o she_o require_v all_o layman_n to_o join_v with_o she_o in_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o be_v liable_a to_o be_v present_v and_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o her_o censure_n if_o they_o do_v refuse_v they_o that_o in_o these_o part_n of_o solemn_a worship_n nothing_o unlawful_a be_v require_v of_o they_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a by_o answer_v the_o objection_n which_o they_o make_v against_o they_o but_o i_o may_v do_v it_o more_o brief_o by_o call_v on_o they_o to_o instance_n in_o any_o thing_n unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v require_v in_o any_o constant_a and_o solemn_a part_n of_o public_a worship_n upon_o which_o they_o be_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v to_o attend_v under_o the_o penalty_n of_o be_v subject_a to_o her_o censure_n for_o their_o neglect_n or_o their_o refusal_n so_o to_o do_v 2_o i_o may_v thus_o argue_v with_o they_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n require_v of_o her_o subject_n can_v be_v reasonable_o conceive_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v for_o otherwise_o we_o must_v condemn_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n through_o all_o age_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o age_n have_v require_v of_o her_o subject_n condition_n of_o communion_n like_a unto_o those_o require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o these_o condition_n of_o communion_n can_v be_v reasonable_o deem_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o argument_n it_o will_v be_v very_o easy_a to_o instance_n in_o multitude_n of_o ceremony_n require_v of_o and_o use_v by_o the_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n throughout_o all_o age_n consequent_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n as_o liable_a to_o the_o exception_n of_o dissenter_n as_o be_v any_o ceremony_n impose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o also_o to_o evince_v that_o liturgy_n or_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v always_o
use_v by_o the_o church_n from_o the_o 3d._n century_n at_o least_o unto_o this_o present_a age._n and_o thence_o to_o show_v that_o our_o dissenter_n do_v by_o condemn_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o effect_n condemn_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o age_n and_o all_o place_n 55._o def._n of_o the_o principle_n of_o love_n p._n 55._o for_o as_o mr._n baxter_n well_o observe_v they_o who_o condemn_v our_o church_n for_o reason_n common_a to_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n must_v virtual_o condemn_v all_o the_o foregoing_a age_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o layman_n be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o be_v practise_v by_o antiquity_n and_o have_v be_v teach_v that_o anti-christ_n begin_v to_o work_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o therefore_o have_v but_o little_a reverence_n for_o argument_n of_o this_o nature_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o convince_v they_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o hold_v communion_n with_o we_o in_o these_o ordinance_n by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o in_o like_a case_n do_v yield_v obedience_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o 2_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o return_v a_o full_a and_o a_o perspicuous_a answer_n to_o all_o the_o argument_n they_o urge_v from_o scripture_n or_o from_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o submit_v unto_o the_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o order_n to_o communion_n with_o she_o beginning_n first_o with_o those_o argument_n which_o do_v suppose_v the_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o lay_n communion_n to_o be_v sinful_a in_o themselves_o or_o thing_n forbid_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o 2_o proceed_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o argument_n which_o do_v allow_v the_o thing_n impose_v to_o be_v lawful_a in_o themselves_o but_o yet_o suppose_v it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o they_o to_o submit_v unto_o they_o 1._o because_o the_o imposition_n of_o they_o be_v a_o violation_n of_o their_o christian_a liberty_n 2_o because_o by_o their_o submission_n to_o they_o as_o they_o imagine_v they_o shall_v be_v indirect_o guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o imposer_n 3_o because_o they_o have_v be_v abuse_v to_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n and_o therefore_o be_v become_v unlawful_a to_o be_v use_v and_o 4_o because_o by_o use_v of_o they_o they_o may_v scandalize_v the_o weak_a which_o god_n have_v forbid_v no_o precept_n of_o the_o magistrate_n can_v oblige_v they_o to_o do_v §_o 2_o and_o 1._o the_o practice_n and_o example_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v such_o a_o precedent_n as_o our_o dissentor_n can_v reasonable_o except_v against_o nor_o can_v they_o justify_v their_o own_o refusal_n to_o be_v follower_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o submit_v unto_o such_o constitution_n make_v by_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o our_o dear_a lord_n submit_v to_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n or_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o such_o a_o church_n as_o he_o become_v a_o member_n of_o now_o 1._o our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o jewish_a national_a church_n and_o of_o the_o synagogue_n at_o nazareth_n the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o assertion_n i_o shall_v deliver_v in_o the_o word_n of_o doctor_n leightfoot_n who_o speak_v thus_o 124._o harm_n part_n 3._o p._n 124._o what_o do_v christ_n all_o the_o while_o he_o live_v at_o nazareth_n a_o private_a man_n do_v he_o never_o go_v to_o the_o synagogue_n upon_o sabbath_n and_o holy_a day_n and_o synagogue-day_n whilst_o other_o go_v to_o the_o congregation_n and_o to_o the_o public_a service_n do_v he_o stay_v at_o home_n do_v he_o not_o appear_v before_o the_o lord_n at_o the_o appoint_a season_n in_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o be_v assure_v he_o do_v so_o for_o his_o parent_n go_v to_o jerusalem_n every_o year_n at_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o passover_n and_o when_o he_o be_v twelve_o year_n old_a they_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n after_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o the_o child_n go_v with_o they_o 2._o luke_n 41_o 42_o 43._o that_o he_o go_v up_o unto_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n we_o be_v inform_v joh._n 7_o 10._o and_o be_v circumcise_v he_o become_v a_o debtor_n to_o do_v the_o whole_a law_n gal._n 5_o 3._o be_v make_v under_o the_o law_n gal._n 4.4_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o it_o now_o the_o great_a business_n of_o these_o feast_n be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o god_n people_n to_o put_v up_o prayer_n and_o praise_n for_o all_o the_o blessing_n they_o do_v then_o commemorate_v at_o these_o time_n all_o israel_n meet_v together_o lam._n 2_o 22._o they_o hear_v the_o read_n of_o the_o law_n deut._n 31_o 9_o 10._o and_o they_o sing_v praise_n to_o god_n isai_n 30_o 29._o you_o shall_v have_v a_o song_n as_o in_o the_o night_n when_o a_o holy_a solemnity_n be_v keep_v if_o then_o our_o saviour_n do_v observe_v these_o feast_n if_o he_o do_v celebrate_v the_o passover_n then_o certain_o he_o do_v communicate_v with_o the_o jewish_a church_n for_o these_o appearance_n be_v ordinance_n and_o symbol_n also_o of_o communion_n §_o 3_o 2ly_n that_o christ_n himself_o neglect_v not_o the_o time_n of_o public_a prayer_n that_o he_o declare_v it_o not_o unlawful_a nor_o do_v prohibit_v his_o disciple_n to_o attend_v upon_o they_o be_v evident_a from_o this_o that_o he_o still_o own_v the_o temple_n as_o his_o father_n house_n 16._o joh._n 2_o 16._o the_o house_n of_o prayer_n that_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n continue_v daily_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o go_v up_o to_o it_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n act._n 3_o 1._o and_o they_o esteem_v it_o a_o very_a commendable_a action_n of_o the_o widow_n anna_n to_o serve_v god_n there_o continual_o with_o prayer_n and_o fast_v 2.37_o luke_n 2.37_o whence_o we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v that_o christ_n himself_o do_v not_o refuse_v nor_o do_v advise_v his_o own_o disciple_n to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o jewish_a church_n in_o common_a prayer_n but_o do_v approve_v communion_n with_o they_o in_o that_o public_a service_n now_o since_o the_o jew_n themselves_o observe_v no_o time_n for_o prayer_n no_o number_n of_o prayer_n see_v no_o daily_a form_n of_o prayer_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n therefore_o say_v dr._n leightfoot_n 217._o harm_n part_n 3._o p._n 217._o the_o sanhedrin_n in_o several_a generation_n make_v canon_n and_o constitution_n to_o decide_v and_o determine_v upon_o all_o these_o particular_n as_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o emergence_n do_v lead_v they_o and_o give_v occasion_n as_o in_o one_o generation_n they_o prescribe_v such_o and_o such_o time_n for_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o find_v these_o time_n allot_v to_o be_v too_o straight_o therefore_o the_o sanhedrin_n of_o another_o generation_n do_v give_v enlargement_n as_o they_o think_v good_a and_o so_o concern_v the_o number_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v say_v daily_o one_o sanhedrin_n appoint_v so_o many_o but_o time_n and_o experience_n find_v afterward_o that_o these_o do_v not_o answer_v such_o and_o such_o occasion_n as_o it_o seem_v be_v not_o observe_v when_o they_o be_v first_o appoint_v therefore_o the_o sanhedrin_n of_o another_o generation_n think_v good_a to_o add_v more_o and_o more_o still_o as_o occasion_n unobserved_a before_o do_v emerge_n and_o so_o the_o number_n of_o their_o daily_a prayer_n grow_v at_o last_o to_o be_v eighteen_o to_o all_o which_o addition_n to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n our_o lord_n and_o his_o disciple_n do_v submit_v attend_v the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o synagogue_n where_o they_o be_v use_v and_o §_o 4_o 3_o that_o he_o be_v particular_o a_o member_n of_o the_o synagogue_n at_o nazareth_n be_v prove_v from_o that_o passage_n of_o st._n luke_n 16._o luke_n 4_o 16._o who_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o come_v to_o nazareth_n where_o he_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o and_o as_o his_o custom_n be_v he_o go_v into_o their_o synagogue_n on_o the_o sabbath-day_n and_o stand_v up_o for_o to_o read_v for_o illustration_n of_o which_o place_n observe_v that_o there_o be_v seven_o reader_n appoint_v in_o their_o synagogue_n who_o 125._o leightf_n harm_n part_n 3_o p._n 125._o when_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o congregation_n call_v they_o out_o do_v read_v now_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o member_n of_o this_o congregation_n may_v be_v argue_v thus_o 124._o ibid._n p._n 124._o you_o find_v not_o in_o the_o whole_a gospel_n though_o christ_n preach_v in_o
i_o shall_v first_o lay_v down_o plain_o the_o assertion_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o it_o give_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o this_o objection_n 2_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o the_o contrary_a tenet_n of_o some_o nonconformist_n which_o be_v here_o assert_v in_o this_o argugument_n 3_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v the_o dangerousness_n of_o this_o opinion_n and_o the_o swarm_n of_o evil_a consequence_n which_o do_v natural_o follow_v from_o it_o and_o 4_o that_o they_o who_o hold_v it_o do_v &_o do_v many_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o it_o and_o 5_o that_o it_o do_v necessary_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o imperfect_a rule_n 1._o then_o when_o we_o assert_v that_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n we_o mean_v it_o thus_o that_o it_o do_v perfect_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o do_v in_o order_n to_o our_o acceptance_n with_o god_n here_o or_o to_o our_o happiness_n with_o he_o hereafter_o not_o that_o it_o do_v particular_o prescribe_v what_o ever_o circumstance_n of_o order_n decency_n or_o convenience_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o this_o do_v seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v the_o true_a distinction_n in_o this_o matter_n betwixt_o the_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o rigid_a puritan_n that_o the_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n assert_n the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a rule_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o christian_a piety_n but_o notwithstanding_o he_o maintain_v that_o holy_a scripture_n have_v leave_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n governor_n sacred_a and_o civil_a to_o appoint_v such_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o they_o shall_v judge_v convenient_a and_o conduce_v to_o the_o end_n of_o unity_n and_o order_n peace_n and_o love_n decency_n uniformity_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o general_n rule_v follow_v after_o the_o thing_n 14.40_o rom._n 14.19_o phil._n 3.16_o 1_o cor._n 14.40_o which_o make_v for_o peace_n and_o whereby_o we_o may_v edify_v one_o another_o let_v we_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n let_v we_o mind_n the_o same_o thing_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n let_v all_o be_v do_v to_o edification_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n give_v no_o offence_n to_o jew_n or_o gentile_n or_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n they_o in_o the_o general_n be_v authorise_v to_o appoint_v such_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n as_o they_o judge_v most_o conduce_v to_o these_o end_n and_o that_o all_o christian_a people_n who_o live_v under_o their_o care_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n by_o virtue_n of_o those_o seripture_n which_o command_v they_o to_o obey_v those_o that_o rule_n over_o they_o and_o to_o submit_v to_o they_o 2.13_o hebr._n 13.17_o ●_o pet._n 5.5_o rom._n 13.1_o 1_o pet._n 2.13_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o elder_n and_o to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n i_o say_v their_o tenet_n be_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o scripture_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o they_o in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v not_o forbid_v in_o his_o word_n for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n of_o god_n forbid_v there_o can_v be_v no_o transgression_n and_o therefore_o to_o refuse_v obedience_n to_o our_o superior_n civil_a or_o sacred_a in_o those_o matter_n be_v to_o refuse_v obedience_n in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o therefore_o to_o offend_v against_o the_o precept_n which_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o be_v subject_a and_o obedient_a to_o they_o so_o that_o we_o do_v assert_v in_o answer_n unto_o this_o objection_n 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o all_o ceremony_n that_o be_v good_a work_n antecedent_o to_o the_o command_n of_o man_n so_o that_o in_o scripture_n some_o express_a for_o they_o may_v be_v find_v but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o rule_n of_o indifferent_a ceremony_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v as_o perfect_v a_o rule_n as_o it_o need_v to_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o ceremony_n uncommand_v in_o particular_a 1_o by_o give_v we_o the_o general_a rule_n which_o shall_v direct_v superior_n in_o the_o impose_v of_o these_o thing_n indifrent_a but_o not_o in_o a_o particular_a prescription_n of_o they_o as_o this_o objection_n do_v suppose_v it_o be_v a_o plain_a contradiction_n that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v to_o we_o indifferent_a and_o yet_o prescribe_v to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n dissenter_n therefore_o must_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n be_v it_o time_n place_n gesture_n or_o the_o word_n in_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v leave_v indifferent_a or_o that_o be_v so_o that_o circumstance_n must_v not_o be_v use_v in_o god_n worship_n or_o else_o they_o must_v confess_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o argument_n produce_v and_o 2_o because_o it_o do_v command_v we_o to_o obey_v superior_n civil_a and_o sacred_a in_o all_o lawful_a matter_n and_o so_o instruct_v we_o to_o submit_v to_o what_o be_v not_o forbid_v by_o god_n word_n when_o by_o superior_n it_o be_v command_v this_o be_v our_o tenet_n and_o this_o be_v a_o direct_a and_o a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o this_o argument_n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o tenet_n of_o some_o nonconformist_n own_v by_o this_o argument_n be_v this_o that_o no_o church_n governor_n ought_v to_o ordain_v or_o introduce_v into_o the_o service_n of_o god_n any_o other_o rite_n or_o observation_n than_o such_o as_o god_n have_v in_o his_o word_n command_v or_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o example_n which_o they_o esteem_v as_o precept_n have_v approve_v and_o that_o if_o they_o enjoin_v such_o thing_n we_o must_v not_o yield_v obedience_n to_o they_o but_o must_v reject_v they_o as_o humane_a invention_n superstition_n and_o will_v worship_v this_o be_v that_o doctrine_n in_o which_o the_o mystery_n of_o puritanism_n do_v consist_v and_o the_o pernicious_a consequence_n of_o it_o be_v so_o many_o that_o any_o person_n who_o do_v weigh_v they_o serious_o will_n if_o he_o be_v indeed_o a_o lover_n of_o christianity_n abhor_v and_o hearty_o renounce_v that_o doctrine_n whence_o they_o so_o natural_o flow_v and_o 1._o this_o doctrine_n cast_v a_o reproach_n upon_o religion_n it_o give_v just_a cause_n to_o magistrate_n to_o scruple_n the_o admission_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o to_o the_o atheist_n and_o the_o politician_n to_o represent_v it_o as_o the_o great_a instrument_n of_o sedition_n and_o disobedience_n for_o this_o opinion_n oblige_v man_n to_o thwart_v the_o magistrate_n in_o all_o indifferent_a matter_n which_o he_o command_v with_o a_o respect_n unto_o god_n worship_n if_o he_o command_v they_o to_o come_v to_o church_n on_o the_o lordsday_n at_o such_o a_o time_n in_o such_o a_o place_n they_o must_v stand_v bind_v in_o conscience_n by_o this_o rule_n to_o refuse_v to_o do_v so_o because_o in_o scripture_n god_n have_v not_o determine_v how_o oft_o what_o hour_n or_o where_o they_o shall_v assemble_v if_o he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v uncover_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n to_o stand_v or_o kneel_v whilst_o they_o be_v pray_v to_o sit_v whilst_o hear_v or_o the_o like_a they_o must_v not_o do_v it_o because_o god_n have_v not_o tell_v they_o in_o his_o word_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v uncover_v in_o his_o presence_n that_o they_o shall_v kneel_v or_o stand_v whilst_o they_o do_v pray_v or_o sit_v when_o they_o do_v hear_v now_o what_o a_o scandal_n what_o a_o base_a impeachment_n be_v it_o to_o our_o peaceable_a religion_n to_o say_v that_o it_o oblige_v we_o to_o disobey_v authority_n in_o matter_n god_n have_v leave_v we_o all_o to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v at_o pleasure_n only_o because_o he_o do_v command_v we_o so_o to_o do_v they_o as_o we_o may_v have_v perform_v they_o have_v he_o not_o command_v we_o and_o that_o nothing_o do_v so_o much_o engage_v we_o to_o be_v refractory_a to_o the_o high_a power_n as_o that_o perfect_a law_n of_o liberty_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v we_o 2_o upon_o the_o same_o account_v it_o must_v be_v sinful_a to_o obey_v those_o civil_a law_n which_o do_v concern_v those_o law_n of_o justice_n charity_n and_o mercy_n towards_o our_o christian_a brother_n which_o can_v clear_o be_v collect_v from_o the_o write_a word_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o scripture_n that_o these_o be_v the_o more_o weighty_a matter_n of_o
many_o other_o instance_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n it_o appear_v that_o though_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o our_o ceremony_n be_v indeed_o apt_a to_o stir_v up_o the_o dull_a mind_n of_o man_n to_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o duty_n to_o god_n yet_o can_v it_o be_v rational_o doubt_v but_o what_o be_v apt_a to_o do_v so_o may_v be_v both_o practise_v and_o impose_v without_o any_o derogation_n from_o the_o kingly_a or_o prophetic_a office_n of_o our_o lord_n answ_n 3_o 3ly_n have_v christ_n set_v down_o in_o scripture_n all_o thing_n that_o may_v any_o way_n conduce_v to_o excite_v good_a affection_n in_o we_o or_o give_v occasion_n to_o any_o pious_a meditation_n or_o have_v he_o not_o if_o he_o have_v not_o then_o be_v not_o the_o assertion_n true_a on_o which_o the_o argument_n be_v ground_v viz._n that_o christ_n in_o scripture_n have_v set_v down_o all_o thing_n by_o which_o we_o lawful_o may_v be_v admonish_v of_o our_o duty_n if_o he_o have_v then_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v have_v a_o good_a affection_n or_o pious_a meditation_n stir_v up_o within_o he_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n or_o object_n than_o such_o as_o be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o which_o assertion_n nothing_o can_v be_v be_v more_o false_a who_o know_v not_o that_o memorable_a story_n of_o the_o cook_n who_o from_o consideration_n of_o the_o heat_n of_o his_o own_o fire_n be_v move_v to_o reflect_v on_o the_o excessive_a torment_n of_o hellfire_n and_o thereby_o to_o abstain_v from_o that_o iniquity_n which_o will_v expose_v he_o to_o they_o shall_v a_o dissenter_n in_o his_o discourse_n with_o one_o of_o this_o call_n or_o in_o his_o writing_n advise_v he_o to_o make_v this_o reflection_n will_v he_o usurp_v upon_o christ_n regal_a or_o prophetic_a office_n answ_n 4_o 4_o though_o this_o objection_n speak_v only_o of_o mystical_a significant_a ceremony_n yet_o do_v it_o with_o equal_a strength_n conclude_v against_o all_o ceremony_n and_o against_o the_o appointment_n of_o time_n and_o place_n for_o public_a worship_n for_o if_o this_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n to_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n may_v make_v no_o law_n concern_v ceremony_n of_o mystical_a signification_n why_o be_v not_o this_o as_o good_a christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n to_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v make_v no_o law_n touch_v the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o if_o christ_n have_v commit_v to_o his_o church_n no_o authority_n of_o appoint_v new_a thing_n but_o only_o a_o ministry_n to_o observe_v and_o do_v such_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v then_o either_o christ_n have_v appoint_v time_n and_o place_n or_o she_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o appoint_v they_o to_o this_o dr._n ames_n answer_v that_o time_n and_o place_n be_v no_o new_a thing_n but_o i_o hope_v to_o appoint_v new_a time_n and_o place_n be_v to_o appoint_v new_a thing_n and_o to_o make_v law_n determine_v a_o time_n and_o place_n not_o determine_v before_o be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a law_n about_o they_o again_o if_o this_o argument_n be_v good_a christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n to_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n may_v make_v no_o law_n concern_v ceremony_n etc._n etc._n why_o be_v not_o this_o as_o good_a christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n to_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n may_v make_v no_o law_n concern_v the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n or_o allowance_n of_o maintenance_n to_o minister_n or_o of_o make_v charitable_a provision_n for_o the_o poor_a or_o touch_v any_o other_o christian_a duty_n but_o must_v leave_v every_o man_n to_o his_o freedom_n in_o these_o matter_n as_o christ_n do_v answ_n 5_o 5_o 32._o 1_o cor._n 14.40_o 10_o 31_o 32._o christ_n have_v by_o his_o apostle_n give_v commandment_n which_o only_o primary_o concern_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n that_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o orderly_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 14.19_o rom._n 14.19_o and_o so_o as_o to_o give_v none_o offence_n that_o christian_n shall_v follow_v after_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v for_o peace_n and_o whereby_o they_o may_v edify_v one_o the_o other_o i_o say_v this_o be_v so_o all_o the_o injunction_n make_v by_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n pursuant_n to_o the_o end_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o avoid_v scandal_n the_o preservation_n of_o peace_n unity_n edification_n and_o for_o prevention_n of_o the_o contrary_a be_v do_v by_o virtual_a commission_n from_o this_o one_o lawgiver_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v no_o entrenchment_n on_o his_o legislative_a power_n and_o if_o superior_n shall_v mistake_v in_o judge_v that_o such_o thing_n do_v real_o conduce_v unto_o the_o decency_n and_o orderly_a performance_n of_o god_n service_n or_o to_o the_o other_o end_v foremention_v when_o indeed_o they_o do_v not_o so_o yet_o will_v not_o their_o impose_v of_o they_o for_o these_o end_n be_v any_o usurpation_n upon_o christ_n legislative_a power_n any_o more_o than_o a_o law_n make_v by_o civil_a ruler_n which_o prove_v inexpedient_a or_o burdensome_a to_o the_o people_n though_o by_o the_o maker_n of_o it_o it_o be_v intend_v for_o their_o good_a usurp_v upon_o the_o legislative_a power_n of_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n for_o as_o it_o be_v judicious_o say_v by_o mr._n 29._o disp_n 5._o chap._n 2._o §._o 29._o baxter_n if_o just_a authority_n shall_v injurious_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v mistake_o determine_v of_o such_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v the_o subject_n duty_n to_o obey_v because_o these_o be_v not_o matter_n alien_a to_o their_o power_n and_o without_o their_o line_n but_o only_o this_o be_v a_o imprudent_a over_n in_o a_o work_n that_o belong_v to_o they_o when_o st._n james_n say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n he_o most_o plain_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o lawgiver_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v or_o pass_v the_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n and_o condemnation_n upon_o other_o whence_o he_o infer_v that_o they_o who_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o censure_v and_o condemn_v their_o brethren_n usurp_v his_o prerogative_n but_o he_o speak_v not_o about_o the_o law_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o condemn_v they_o and_o whereas_o mr._n 65._o answ_n to_o the_o commissioner_n p._n 65._o baxter_n do_v plausible_o object_n against_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o ceremony_n that_o they_o be_v equal_o useful_a to_o the_o church_n universal_a in_o all_o age_n as_o to_o any_o particular_a church_n or_o age_n and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o a_o universal_a law_n if_o of_o any_o and_o so_o shall_v be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o universal_a lawgiver_n if_o of_o any_o i_o answer_v this_o if_o grant_v will_v only_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o positive_a decency_n expedience_n or_o edification_n in_o these_o ceremony_n as_o be_v conceive_v by_o our_o ruler_n that_o shall_v render_v they_o fit_a to_o be_v impose_v but_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o they_o usurp_v upon_o christ_n legislative_a power_n by_o impose_v of_o they_o to_o these_o end_n but_o 2_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v will_v necessary_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o age_n she_o have_v always_o use_v and_o by_o her_o canon_n and_o constitution_n impose_v such_o ceremony_n as_o be_v equal_o useful_a in_o all_o age_n and_o all_o church_n as_o in_o any_o as_o u.g._n stand_v upon_o the_o lordsday_n at_o prayer_n receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n fast_v and_o all_o the_o ceremony_n ancient_o annex_v to_o baptism_n to_o omit_v many_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n before_o mention_v now_o say_v he_o in_o another_o place_n i_o dare_v not_o think_v or_o assert_v that_o for_o truth_n which_o will_v condemn_v all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n throughout_o most_o age_n of_o it_o 24._o disp_n 5._o chap._n 2._o from_o §._o 7._o to_o the_o 24._o 3_o the_o same_o judicious_a person_n give_v we_o many_o instance_n of_o matter_n relate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o christ_n have_v not_o determine_v by_o law_n as_o v._o g._n what_o utensil_n to_o employ_v about_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n whether_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n at_o a_o table_n of_o wood_n or_o stone_n whether_o we_o shall_v sing_v in_o rythm_n or_o metre_n or_o in_o prose_n what_o order_n shall_v be_v observe_v in_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o how_o much_o of_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v at_o a_o time_n what_o method_n we_o shall_v use_v in_o preach_v what_o word_n in_o prayer_n or_o what_o gesture_n with_o
with_o respect_n unto_o the_o manner_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o dr._n stillingfleet_n that_o many_o superstition_n condemn_v in_o scripture_n chief_o consist_v in_o the_o forbearance_n of_o thing_n lawful_a 37._o serm._n of_o super_v p._n 37._o on_o supposition_n that_o the_o forbearance_n of_o they_o be_v well_o please_v to_o god_n the_o superstition_n condemn_v coloss_n 2.22_o lay_v in_o suppose_v god_n to_o be_v please_v with_o their_o forbearance_n of_o thing_n lawful_a with_o their_o not_o touch_v taste_v handle_v they_o and_o therefore_o be_v a_o negative_a superstition_n and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o dispute_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o pharisee_n about_o heal_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n they_o think_v it_o unlawful_a and_o therefore_o do_v abstain_v christ_n think_v it_o lawful_a to_o do_v good_a on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o therefore_o do_v it_o here_o be_v no_o positive_a observance_n on_o the_o pharisee_n part_n yet_o here_o be_v superstition_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o superstition_n do_v extend_v to_o the_o forbearance_n of_o thing_n in_o themselves_o lawful_a as_o displease_v to_o god_n §_o 4_o now_o to_o apply_v these_o thing_n that_o the_o forbearance_n of_o the_o ceremony_n require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n on_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v lawful_a in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o be_v by_o dissenter_n abstain_v from_o as_o unlawful_a must_v be_v superstitious_a will_v be_v exceed_o evident_a 1._o because_o they_o do_v and_o must_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n esteem_v this_o their_o refusal_n to_o submit_v unto_o they_o when_o impose_v as_o a_o act_n of_o special_a honour_n to_o god_n it_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o their_o mind_n that_o they_o think_v god_n dishonour_v by_o such_o act_n and_o therefore_o dare_v not_o comply_v with_o they_o it_o can_v be_v only_a fear_n of_o sin_v against_o god_n which_o can_v engage_v they_o with_o the_o hazard_n of_o their_o estate_n and_o ease_n etc._n etc._n thus_o to_o refuse_v obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o their_o superior_n they_o then_o must_v look_v on_o this_o refusal_n as_o a_o product_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o as_o a_o act_n of_o true_a obedience_n to_o he_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o unjust_a command_n of_o man_n or_o a_o obey_a god_n more_o than_o man_n and_o consequent_o they_o must_v esteem_v themselves_o more_o holy_a acceptable_a and_o well_o please_v to_o god_n on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o forbearance_n than_o conformist_n be_v 2_o because_o they_o do_v and_o must_v esteem_v god_n worship_n corrupt_v by_o the_o use_n of_o these_o our_o rite_n as_o to_o the_o purity_n and_o the_o spirituality_n of_o it_o and_o so_o they_o do_v esteem_v themselves_o by_o this_o forbearance_n preserver_n of_o his_o worship_n pure_a and_o spiritual_a and_o free_a from_o that_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n with_o which_o they_o charge_v it_o upon_o these_o account_n 3_o because_o they_o do_v and_o must_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n rather_o refuse_v to_o join_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o our_o church_n and_o rather_o bind_v to_o set_v up_o separate_a communion_n than_o to_o comply_v with_o these_o our_o rite_n now_o sure_o nothing_o but_o a_o necessity_n of_o displease_v god_n by_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o we_o can_v warrant_v their_o refusal_n of_o it_o nothing_o but_o a_o necessity_n by_o god_n impose_v on_o they_o of_o set_v up_o such_o separate_a communion_n in_o order_n to_o the_o acceptable_a worship_n of_o god_n can_v justify_v their_o separation_n if_o therefore_o they_o mistake_v in_o judge_v that_o such_o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o they_o as_o they_o must_v do_v if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o submit_v unto_o these_o rite_n and_o hold_v communion_n with_o we_o notwithstanding_o the_o necessity_n which_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o submit_v unto_o they_o they_o must_v be_v superstitious_a in_o that_o practice_n which_o follow_v from_o this_o grand_a mistake_n §_o 5_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o close_a of_o this_o objection_n it_o be_v say_v that_o these_o thing_n edify_v by_o their_o signification_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v good_a and_o profitable_a and_o so_o not_o like_a unto_o vain_a word_n and_o action_n to_o this_o it_o be_v reply_v by_o dissenter_n that_o many_o thing_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n when_o they_o be_v use_v by_o devout_a and_o think_v man_n may_v edify_v by_o their_o signification_n and_o yet_o the_o imposition_n of_o they_o upon_o that_o account_n will_v scarce_o exempt_v they_o from_o the_o appearance_n of_o vanity_n as_o v._o g._n shall_v a_o church_n governor_n command_v his_o subject_n to_o appear_v in_o armour_n in_o the_o church_n to_o signify_v their_o spiritual_a warfare_n or_o to_o put_v on_o a_o helmet_n to_o signify_v that_o they_o will_v manful_o fight_v under_o christ_n banner_n or_o to_o drink_v milk_n in_o token_n of_o their_o desire_n to_o feed_v on_o the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n or_o to_o use_v vinegar_n and_o gall_n in_o token_n of_o their_o resolution_n to_o undergo_v the_o great_a hardship_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o put_v on_o a_o pair_n of_o spectacle_n to_o signify_v we_o be_v dim_v sight_v in_o the_o thing_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o signification_n of_o these_o thing_n may_v tend_v to_o edify_v the_o thing_n require_v can_v hardly_o be_v excuse_v from_o vanity_n 2_o they_o add_v that_o edification_n in_o the_o scripture_n sense_n be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o this_o obscure_a way_n of_o teach_v by_o signification_n to_o edify_v our_o brother_n in_o the_o scripture_n sense_n be_v to_o build_v he_o up_o and_o to_o confirm_v he_o and_o help_v he_o forward_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n 1_o tim._n 1.4_o jud._n 20._o the_o thing_n by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o receive_v edification_n be_v of_o a_o better_a nature_n viz._n walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act._n 9_o 31._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n 1_o cor._n 14.3_o 4_o 5._o christian_n admonition_n and_o discourse_n administer_a grace_n unto_o the_o hearer_n eph._n 4.29_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n descend_v on_o christ_n member_n eph._n 4.16_o of_o the_o edification_n of_o any_o indifferent_a and_o humane_a ceremony_n the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n we_o be_v then_o say_v in_o scripture_n to_o edify_v our_o brother_n when_o we_o forbear_v indifferent_a and_o unnecessary_a thing_n which_o through_o his_o weakness_n do_v cooperate_v towards_o his_o ruin_n rom._n 14.19_o 20._o we_o do_v it_o by_o our_o charity_n towards_o he_o in_o these_o thing_n for_o charity_n edify_v 1_o cor._n 8.1_o by_o our_o promotion_n of_o unity_n and_o so_o by_o the_o removal_n of_o such_o unnecessary_a thing_n as_o do_v obstruct_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d edify_v yourselves_o into_o one_o 1_o thes_n 5.11_o answ_n but_o be_v this_o grant_v that_o some_o one_o or_o more_o of_o our_o ceremony_n seem_v to_o you_o unprofitable_a and_o unserviceable_a to_o the_o use_n of_o edify_v what_o be_v that_o to_o you_o who_o only_o be_v concern_v to_o know_v whether_o what_o your_o superior_n command_v may_v lawful_o be_v do_v by_o you_o and_o who_o transgress_v your_o bound_n when_o you_o presume_v to_o judge_v whether_o the_o thing_n impose_v be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n profitable_a edify_a or_o convenient_a to_o be_v impose_v for_o if_o they_o be_v as_o you_o conceive_v the_o fault_n suppose_v in_o the_o impose_v of_o they_o be_v not_o you_o but_o they_o whereas_o the_o fault_n in_o not_o submit_v to_o they_o if_o lawful_a will_v most_o certain_o be_v you_o 2_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o yet_o your_o submission_n to_o they_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o lawful_a command_n of_o your_o superior_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n for_o the_o prevention_n of_o schism_n and_o all_o its_o dreadful_a consequent_n for_o the_o obtain_n freedom_n to_o join_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n will_v doubtless_o high_o tend_v to_o your_o edification_n and_o your_o profit_n as_o be_v a_o submission_n to_o they_o for_o such_o pious_a christian_a end_n as_o christianity_n most_o stirict_o do_v oblige_v we_o to_o aim_v at_o and_o pursue_v and_o which_o be_v in_o themselves_o sufficient_a to_o sanctify_v a_o action_n otherwise_o unprofitable_a and_o render_v it_o a_o christian_a duty_n last_o to_o kneel_v at_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o express_v our_o reverence_n and_o humility_n to_o sign_v a_o child_n with_o the_o cross_n in_o token_n to_o the_o congregation_n that_o he_o be_v list_v among_o christ_n member_n or_o wear_v a_o surplice_n for_o decency_n or_o distinction_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v vain_a by_o any_o of_o the_o instance_n foremention_v obj._n 7_o we_o can_v say_v dissenter_n
lawful_o submit_v to_o the_o institution_n §_o 7_o or_o introduction_n of_o new_a sacrament_n into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n or_o use_v they_o be_v introduce_v without_o divine_a institution_n for_o a_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o catechism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o outward_a visible_a sign_n of_o inward_a spiritual_a grace_n and_o both_o a_o mean_n thereof_o and_o a_o pledge_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o it_o he_o only_o can_v have_v power_n to_o appoint_v a_o sacramental_a sign_n who_o have_v right_a to_o promise_v and_o power_n to_o minister_v that_o grace_n and_o therefore_o he_o alone_o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n can_v institute_v a_o sacrament_n now_o that_o our_o ceremony_n some_o at_o least_o of_o they_o be_v sacrament_n they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o these_o argument_n 1._o all_o mystical_a bodily_a rite_n and_o sign_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n administer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o his_o solemn_a service_n to_o confirm_v grace_n and_o that_o by_o he_o who_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n be_v sacrament_n but_o such_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o ceremony_n for_o they_o be_v administer_v to_o edify_v the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n must_v be_v administer_v to_o confirm_v grace_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v for_o this_o cause_n alone_o a_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v a_o mystical_a rite_n whereby_o the_o soul_n spiritual_o feed_v upon_o christ_n i._n e._n be_v edify_v in_o christ_n these_o be_v mystical_a rite_n whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v edify_v must_v be_v also_o sacrament_n 2_o no_o reason_n say_v they_o can_v be_v give_v why_o the_o representation_n of_o some_o spiritual_a duty_n by_o a_o mystical_a rite_n shall_v not_o as_o proper_o pertain_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n as_o the_o shadow_a or_o seal_v some_o spiritual_a promise_n and_o it_o seem_v altogether_o as_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o devise_v sign_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o to_o admonish_v of_o and_o teach_v his_o duty_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o a_o addition_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o instruction_n appoint_v by_o god_n and_o to_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o assurance_n prescribe_v by_o he_o the_o commandment_n and_o promise_n be_v so_o knit_v together_o that_o we_o can_v perform_v our_o duty_n without_o assurance_n of_o some_o benefit_n by_o it_o from_o god_n moreover_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o exciter_n of_o devotion_n require_v power_n supernatural_a no_o less_o than_o to_o be_v a_o confirmer_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o he_o who_o have_v authority_n to_o ordain_v mean_n effectual_a for_o any_o of_o these_o end_n can_v bless_v they_o all_o and_o man_n have_v as_o much_o power_n to_o seal_v what_o he_o can_v bestow_v as_o to_o teach_v by_o his_o own_o sign_n that_o which_o he_o can_v bless_v to_o that_o end_n answ_n 1_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o introduce_v new_a sacrament_n true_o and_o proper_o so_o call_v but_o then_o unto_o the_o argument_n produce_v to_o prove_v our_o ceremony_n to_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a sacrament_n i_o reply_v 1._o that_o i_o know_v not_o any_o ceremony_n which_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n or_o to_o confirm_v grace_n to_o we_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o appoint_v or_o use_v such_o rite_n as_o in_o themselves_o be_v apt_a to_o signify_v or_o mind_v we_o of_o spiritual_a thing_n or_o bring_v such_o thing_n to_o our_o remembrance_n which_o the_o church_n confess_o do_v and_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n to_o appoint_v such_o rite_n to_o be_v use_v to_o that_o end_n which_o the_o church_n do_v not_o by_o the_o bare_a use_v of_o the_o thing_n appoint_v we_o comply_v with_o the_o institution_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n but_o only_o by_o use_v of_o these_o rite_n to_o such_o a_o end_n do_v we_o comply_v with_o it_o in_o the_o second_o now_o where_o do_v the_o church_n of_o england_n require_v we_o to_o use_v her_o ceremony_n to_o such_o end_n where_o do_v she_o say_v you_o shall_v wear_v a_o surplice_n to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o purity_n of_o conversation_n which_o be_v require_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n you_o shall_v kneel_v to_o signify_v or_o mind_v you_o of_o that_o reverence_n you_o owe_v to_o god_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o your_o duty_n to_o confess_v and_o own_v a_o crucify_a saviour_n no_o sure_a that_o ceremony_n be_v use_v to_o person_n not_o capable_a of_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o any_o duty_n only_o in_o token_n to_o the_o congregation_n that_o they_o be_v list_v among_o they_o who_o be_v engage_v so_o to_o confess_v what_o enquiry_n do_v the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v whether_o any_o of_o her_o member_n have_v use_v her_o ceremony_n to_o these_o end_n or_o not_o when_o do_v she_o ever_o quarrel_v with_o or_o punish_v any_o for_o neglect_v to_o use_v they_o to_o these_o end_n wherefore_o the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v in_o my_o judgement_n false_a and_o rather_o ground_v upon_o some_o fanciful_a expression_n of_o some_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o upon_o any_o of_o she_o own_o institution_n and_o decree_n she_o have_v no_o where_n say_v that_o she_o administer_v any_o of_o the_o forementioned_a rite_n to_o confirm_v grace_n or_o do_v appoint_v they_o to_o be_v sign_n of_o grace_n but_o only_o that_o she_o do_v appoint_v they_o as_o be_v apt_a and_o proper_a in_o themselves_o to_o put_v good_a thought_n into_o we_o or_o to_o express_v our_o reverence_n as_o beat_v on_o the_o breast_n or_o sigh_v be_v apt_a to_o signify_v or_o to_o express_v our_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o mind_v we_o of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a creator_n and_o of_o that_o majesty_n who_o dwell_v there_o answer_v 2_o 2ly_n if_o the_o design_n of_o these_o ceremony_n to_o signify_v express_v or_o bring_v into_o my_o mind_n spiritual_a thing_n will_v make_v they_o sacrament_n then_o 1._o the_o kiss_n of_o charity_n and_o the_o love_n feast_n use_v and_o approve_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n design_v to_o signify_v or_o represent_v spiritual_a thing_n must_v also_o be_v esteem_v sacrament_n they_o be_v all_o design_a to_o edify_v the_o soul_n and_o consequent_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o present_a day_n must_v just_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o this_o sacrilegious_a guilt_n of_o add_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n 2_o then_o must_v all_o visible_a creature_n become_v sacrament_n they_o be_v all_o design_v by_o god_n to_o edify_v we_o by_o instruct_v we_o in_o and_o mind_v we_o of_o the_o almighty_a power_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n then_o 3_o every_o crucifix_n and_o picture_n relate_v to_o spiritual_a thing_n every_o piece_n of_o tapestry_n or_o turkywork_n which_o contain_v any_o piece_n of_o sacred_a history_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v edify_v every_o good_a ballad_n pious_a book_n and_o frontispiece_n set_v before_o it_o and_o even_o that_o pack_n of_o card_n which_o late_o be_v contrive_v to_o mind_v we_o of_o the_o popish_a plot_n must_v be_v a_o sacrament_n if_o as_o the_o first_o objection_n say_v all_o rite_n and_o sign_n whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v edify_v or_o which_o have_v be_v design_v to_o that_o end_n be_v sacrament_n than_o all_o the_o moral_a sign_n of_o the_o whole_a jewish_a law_n must_v be_v repute_v sacrament_n the_o tabernacle_n the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n the_o golden_a candlestick_n the_o lamp_n and_o snuffer_n the_o priest_n garment_n the_o phylactery_n and_o fringe_n which_o god_n command_v they_o to_o wear_v for_o a_o memorial_n the_o clean_a beast_n appoint_v to_o be_v eat_v and_o offer_v and_o the_o unclean_a to_o be_v abstain_v from_o must_v all_o be_v sacrament_n according_a to_o this_o rule_n they_o be_v rite_n appoint_v to_o signify_v spiritual_a thing_n or_o duty_n and_o so_o to_o edify_v the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n yea_o every_o good_a word_n we_o speak_v every_o instruction_n we_o deliver_v to_o our_o child_n or_o friend_n or_o our_o parishioner_n every_o public_a prayer_n must_v be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o word_n be_v sign_n and_o these_o be_v word_n and_o therefore_o sign_n design_v to_o edify_v the_o soul_n last_o if_o every_o thing_n design_v to_o teach_v the_o understanding_n or_o to_o excite_v devotion_n only_o as_o object_n and_o as_o occasion_n which_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n may_v use_v or_o may_v reflect_v on_o to_o that_o end_n must_v be_v a_o sacrament_n than_o every_o
sacrament_n unnecessary_a and_o no_o more_o operative_a than_o be_v a_o meditation_n on_o the_o thing_n they_o represent_v whereas_o indeed_o they_o seal_v grace_n they_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o grace_n annex_v to_o they_o and_o they_o confer_v it_o physical_o on_o the_o due_a receiver_n §_o 59_o and_o then_o say_v he_o for_o relative_a grace_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o well_o as_o by_o baptism_n we_o be_v enter_v into_o a_o state_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o invest_n sacramental_a sign_n it_o list_v we_o under_o the_o banner_n of_o christ_n crucify_a and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a essential_a nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n itself_o answ_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o cross_n use_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o invest_n sign_n or_o that_o we_o by_o the_o cross_n be_v enter_v into_o a_o state_n of_o christianity_n it_o be_v only_o a_o declarative_a sign_n to_o other_o that_o we_o have_v be_v enter_v by_o baptism_n §_o 60_o 61._o if_o say_v he_o you_o judge_v it_o essential_a to_o a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o engage_v sign_n in_o the_o very_a covenant_n of_o grace_n itself_o the_o cross_n be_v institute_v to_o this_o end_n it_o be_v to_o engage_v ourselves_o to_o a_o crucify_a christ_n as_o our_o captain_n and_o saviour_n by_o his_o cross_n and_o to_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o soldier_n or_o christian_n to_o our_o life_n end_v and_o consequent_o to_o teach_v we_o to_o expect_v the_o privilege_n of_o faithful_a servant_n and_o soldier_n from_o a_o crucify_a christ_n all_o this_o he_o gather_v from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o common-prayer_n we_o sign_v this_o child_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o token_n that_o hereafter_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n crucify_a etc._n etc._n but_o these_o word_n right_o interpret_v give_v he_o no_o colour_n for_o any_o of_o his_o inference_n the_o token_n there_o speak_v of_o relate_v not_o to_o the_o child_n who_o be_v uncapable_a of_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o but_o to_o the_o congregation_n into_o which_o he_o be_v receive_v so_o that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v we_o receive_v this_o child_n into_o the_o congregation_n present_a in_o token_n to_o they_o that_o he_o be_v now_o by_o baptism_n become_v one_o of_o they_o who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o crucify_a jesus_n and_o so_o hereafter_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v that_o faith_n this_o will_v be_v evident_a from_o the_o subscription_n make_v by_o dr._n burges_n in_o these_o word_n where_o the_o book_n say_v 25._o defence_n of_o dr._n morton_n p._n 24_o 25._o and_o do_v sign_n he_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o token_n etc._n etc._n i_o understand_v the_o book_n not_o to_o mean_v that_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v any_o virtue_n in_o it_o to_o effect_v or_o further_o this_o duty_n but_o only_o to_o intimate_v and_o express_v by_o that_o ceremony_n by_o which_o the_o ancient_n do_v avow_v their_o profession_n of_o christ_n crucify_a what_o the_o congregation_n hope_v and_o expect_v hereafter_o from_o that_o infant_n viz._n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n crucify_a into_o which_o he_o be_v even_o now_o baptise_a and_o therefore_o also_o when_o the_o 30_o canon_n say_v that_o the_o infant_n be_v by_o that_o sign_n dedicate_v unto_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n i_o understand_v that_o dedication_n to_o import_v not_o a_o real_a consecration_n of_o the_o child_n which_o be_v do_v in_o baptism_n itself_o but_o only_o a_o ceremonial_a declaration_n of_o that_o dedication_n like_v as_o the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o make_v clean_o the_o leper_n who_o be_v clean_o he_o only_o declare_v these_o interpretation_n king_n james_n accept_v 26._o p._n 26._o and_o my_o lord_n grace_n of_o canterbury_n affirm_v they_o to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o again_o p._n 477_o 478_o the_o child_n say_v he_o must_v first_o be_v baptise_a and_o upon_o that_o baptism_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o minister_n speak_v then_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n we_o receive_v this_o child_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v now_o make_v a_o visible_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o baptism_n before_o he_o may_v use_v this_o ceremony_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o when_o he_o do_v use_v it_o he_o be_v bind_v at_o that_o instant_n to_o profess_v and_o tell_v why_o it_o be_v do_v namely_o in_o token_n that_o hereafter_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a etc._n etc._n that_o be_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o that_o covenant_n whereinto_o he_o be_v by_o baptism_n now_o enter_v so_o as_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v to_o add_v either_o virtue_n to_o the_o sacrament_n or_o capacity_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o child_n but_o only_o for_o intimation_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n for_o their_o instruction_n what_o it_o be_v to_o which_o baptism_n once_o receive_v bind_v all_o christian_n that_o come_v to_o age_n convenient_a which_o ceremony_n the_o church_n of_o england_n think_v good_a to_o retain_v because_o it_o have_v such_o a_o use_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n if_o any_o man_n do_v yet_o stumble_v as_o i_o confess_v myself_o to_o have_v do_v at_o those_o word_n of_o the_o 30_o canon_n that_o by_o this_o lawful_a ceremony_n and_o honourable_a badge_n this_o child_n be_v dedicate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n i_o pray_v such_o a_o one_o to_o know_v and_o i_o have_v good_a warrant_n to_o assure_v he_o that_o the_o word_n dedicate_v do_v here_o import_v no_o more_o than_o declare_v by_o that_o ceremony_n to_o be_v dedicate_v like_a as_o the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o have_v cleanse_v the_o leper_n who_o he_o only_o declare_v to_o be_v clean_o levit._n 16._o disp_n the_o 5._o of_o cer._n chap._n 3._o ●_o 18_o 16._o 14.11_o now_o to_o this_o end_n say_v mr._n baxter_n and_o on_o these_o term_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n use_v heretofore_o by_o christian_n and_o therefore_o i_o dare_v not_o have_v reprove_v any_o of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n that_o use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n mere_o as_o a_o profess_v signal_n action_n to_o show_v to_o the_o heathen_a and_o jew_n about_o they_o that_o they_o believe_v in_o a_o crucify_a christ_n and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o his_o cross_n the_o occasional_a indifferent_a use_n of_o this_o when_o it_o be_v mere_o to_o this_o end_n i_o dare_v not_o have_v condemn_v chap._n vi_o the_o content_n the_o argument_n against_o the_o rite_n establish_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o which_o dissenter_n do_v endeavour_v to_o show_v that_o though_o they_o may_v be_v lawful_a in_o themselves_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v submit_v to_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o circumstance_n which_o attend_v they_o be_v reduce_v to_o their_o respective_a head_n viz._n 1._o the_o suppose_a violation_n of_o christian_a liberty_n 2_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o by_o other_o to_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n 3_o the_o appearance_n of_o evil_n that_o be_v in_o they_o 4_o the_o scandal_n which_o they_o minister_v to_o the_o weak_a and_o last_o that_o by_o submit_v to_o they_o they_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o suppose_a sin_n of_o the_o imposer_n §_o 1._o objection_n the_o one_a they_o violate_v our_o christian_a liberty_n because_o they_o render_v we_o subject_a to_o ordinance_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n forbid_v 2_o coloss_n 20._o 2ly_n the_o servant_n of_o man_n which_o be_v forbid_v 1_o cor._n 7.23_o 3_o because_o they_o bound_v the_o conscience_n and_o 4_o because_o they_o be_v urge_v on_o those_o who_o in_o their_o conscience_n condemn_v they_o §_o 2._o in_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n it_o be_v assert_v that_o the_o determination_n of_o any_o thing_n indifferent_a by_o our_o superior_n provide_v they_o do_v not_o impose_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n or_o as_o a_o part_n of_o our_o religious_a worship_n can_v no_o way_n violate_v our_o christian_a liberty_n and_o that_o 1._o because_o scripture_n lay_v restraint_n upon_o our_o liberty_n in_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n 2_o then_o all_o our_o vow_n and_o promise_v respect_v thing_n indifferent_a relate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n will_v violate_v our_o christian_a liberty_n 3_o because_o what_o we_o may_v do_v though_o no_o injunction_n of_o the_o magistrate_n require_v it_o can_v be_v sin_n when_o do_v because_o he_o do_v require_v it_o 4_o then_o shall_v the_o magistrate_n forbid_v the_o do_n of_o the_o thing_n enjoin_v we_o must_v not_o leave_v undo_v what_o he_o forbid_v 5_o then_o be_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o
here_o not_o to_o touch_v the_o unclean_a thing_n be_v only_o to_o purge_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o context_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v mention_v the_o promise_n god_n have_v make_v to_o those_o who_o do_v separate_v themselves_o and_o touch_v not_o the_o unclean_a thing_n viz._n that_o god_n will_v receive_v they_o and_o be_v a_o father_n to_o they_o he_o infer_v wherefore_o belove_v let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n chap._n 7.1_o so_o that_o this_o text_n can_v concern_v our_o ceremony_n unless_o it_o be_v assert_v that_o whilst_o we_o use_v they_o we_o can_v cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n and_o 4_o the_o unclean_a thing_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v plain_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n as_o that_o expression_n intimate_v what_o conjunction_n have_v the_o christian_n who_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n to_o touch_v this_o unclean_a thing_n be_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o their_o idolatry_n by_o eat_v of_o their_o idol_n feast_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o their_o idol_n which_o be_v say_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v communion_n with_o devil_n 1_o cor._n 10.20_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n v._o 21._o let_v we_o not_o therefore_o say_v he_o who_o have_v take_v upon_o we_o the_o yoke_n of_o christianity_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d draw_v in_o a_o contrary_a yoke_n with_o the_o unfaithful_a for_o that_o the_o apostle_n can_v by_o the_o unclean_a thing_n mean_v marriage_n with_o a_o infidel_n be_v evident_a because_o he_o say_v the_o unbelieving_a husband_n be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o beliving_a wife_n 7.14_o 1_o cor._n 7.14_o if_o then_o these_o ceremony_n which_o we_o use_v can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v idol_n they_o must_v be_v unconcern_v in_o this_o prohibition_n to_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o apostle_n judes'_v exhortation_n to_o hate_v the_o garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n 437._o defence_n of_o dr._n morton_n p._n 437._o it_o be_v well_o answer_v by_o dr._n burges_n that_o as_o a_o garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o unclean_a be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v hate_v than_o till_o it_o be_v wash_v and_o be_v wash_v may_v again_o be_v use_v so_o be_v it_o with_o ceremony_n of_o indifferent_a nature_n which_o have_v be_v defile_v 2_o to_o hate_v or_o fly_v the_o garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n be_v only_o to_o hate_v every_o thing_n that_o do_v defile_v though_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n for_o so_o the_o leprous_a and_o unclean_a garment_n do_v hate_v say_v the_o reverend_a dr._n hammond_n all_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o impurity_n and_o uncleanness_n when_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v any_o degree_n of_o impurity_n or_o uncleanness_n in_o the_o use_n of_o our_o ceremony_n then_o only_o may_v this_o text_n be_v urge_v against_o they_o and_o 3_o the_o refusal_n to_o submit_v unto_o they_o tend_v to_o disobedience_n and_o schism_n and_o all_o the_o dreadful_a consequence_n which_o do_v follow_v from_o they_o may_v seem_v more_o likely_a to_o be_v forbid_v by_o this_o text_n than_o our_o submission_n to_o they_o in_o obedience_n to_o authority_n again_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v that_o christ_n reprove_v the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n and_o thyatira_n for_o suffer_v man_n to_o teach_v her_o child_n to_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n 20._o rev._n 2.14_o 20._o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o st._n paul_n have_v teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a in_o itself_o to_o eat_v flesh_n offer_v to_o idol_n for_o the_o earth_n say_v he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o 1_o cor._n 10.28_o and_o so_o we_o may_v sufficient_o be_v feed_v by_o other_o meat_n and_o yet_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o meat_n may_v lawful_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o christian_a that_o it_o be_v clean_o to_o the_o clean_a tit._n 1.15_o and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o through_o weakness_n that_o it_o can_v defile_v the_o conscience_n and_o only_o be_v unclean_a to_o he_o that_o think_v it_o to_o be_v so_o rom._n 14.14_o and_o he_o give_v free_a commission_n to_o all_o man_n to_o eat_v it_o ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n 1_o cor._n 10.27_o and_o bid_v we_o as_o it_o be_v in_o flat_a contradiction_n to_o this_o objection_n not_o to_o inquire_v or_o be_v follicitous_a whether_o the_o meat_n we_o eat_v have_v be_v by_o other_o so_o abuse_v to_o idolatry_n and_o if_o the_o offering_n of_o flesh_n to_o a_o idol_n do_v not_o debar_v our_o freedom_n of_o use_v it_o to_o the_o sustain_n of_o our_o body_n why_o shall_v the_o superstitious_a use_n of_o a_o ceremony_n make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o be_v use_v by_o other_o without_o that_o superstition_n the_o eat_v therefore_o of_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n and_o teach_v other_o so_o to_o do_v which_o be_v the_o thing_n condemn_v in_o those_o church_n by_o our_o lord_n be_v only_o eat_v of_o they_o in_o the_o idol_n temple_n and_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o idol_n so_o as_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n or_o to_o commit_v idolatry_n by_o the_o participation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v so_o evident_a from_o the_o context_n that_o he_o who_o run_v may_v read_v it_o for_o 1._o they_o be_v there_o also_o say_v to_o teach_v their_o child_n to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o to_o eat_v thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n revel_v 2.14_o 20._o now_o all_o man_n know_v that_o fornication_n in_o the_o spiritual_a sense_n import_v idolatry_n 2_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n who_o teach_v her_o child_n to_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n be_v say_v to_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balaam_n who_o teach_v balak_n to_o cast_v a_o stumbling-block_n before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v to_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o god_n to_o eat_v and_o to_o bow_v down_o unto_o they_o or_o to_o entice_v they_o by_o the_o daughter_n of_o moab_n to_o this_o sin_n numb_a 25.1_o 2_o 3._o last_o the_o woman_n who_o seduce_v the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o to_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n be_v call_v jezabel_n a_o woman_n famous_a for_o her_o promotion_n of_o idolatry_n proceed_v we_o now_o to_o answer_v the_o example_n propound_v in_o the_o objection_n and_o §_o 8_o 1._o 35.4_o gen._n 35.4_o to_o that_o of_o jacob_n who_o cause_v his_o family_n to_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o earring_n which_o be_v in_o their_o ear_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o these_o earring_n be_v say_v some_o interpreter_n the_o earring_n which_o adorn_v their_o god_n and_o so_o be_v part_n of_o their_o strange_a god_n they_o be_v say_v other_o earring_n in_o which_o be_v grave_v the_o effigy_n of_o their_o god_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o so_o they_o be_v plain_a idol_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v abolish_v they_o be_v say_v other_o dedicate_v to_o some_o numen_fw-la according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o syrian_n and_o the_o phaenician_o and_o so_o be_v actual_a instrument_n of_o idolatry_n now_o what_o do_v this_o concern_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o as_o she_o use_v they_o be_v neither_o idol_n nor_o instrument_n of_o idolatry_n 2._o 1.8_o dan._n 1.8_o to_o the_o example_n of_o daniel_n who_o will_v not_o defile_v himself_o with_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o king_n meat_n nor_o with_o the_o wine_n which_o he_o drink_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v on_o many_o account_n impertinent_a 1._o because_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o mr._n calvin_n the_o pollution_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o ceremonial_a pollution_n arise_v from_o the_o idolatrous_a use_n of_o the_o meat_n but_o only_o moral_a and_o occasional_a by_o their_o be_v bat_n and_o allurement_n to_o draw_v he_o to_o a_o irreligious_a forgetfulness_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n 2_o if_o the_o pollution_n be_v ceremonial_a it_o may_v arise_v from_o a_o mixture_n of_o meat_n forbid_v by_o the_o jewish_a law_n with_o other_o lawful_a to_o be_v eat_v and_o which_o if_o he_o refuse_v he_o will_v not_o have_v eat_v the_o full_a portion_n allow_v by_o the_o king_n 3_o 3.2_o esth_n 3.2_o to_o the_o example_n of_o mordecai_n refuse_v to_o bow_v to_o haman_n 1._o if_o he_o himself_o may_v be_v believe_v he_o do_v not_o refuse_v what_o he_o conceive_v lawful_a in_o itself_o because_o it_o be_v by_o other_o abuse_v to_o idolatry_n but_o because_o the_o worship_n which_o by_o haman_n be_v require_v be_v in_o itself_o idolatrous_a as_o be_v worship_n proper_a to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n for_o thus_o he_o speak_v thou_o know_v lord_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o out_o of_o pride_n nor_o
from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o by_o join_v with_o we_o in_o this_o ordinance_n when_o they_o can_v join_v with_o other_o who_o do_v keep_v up_o discipline_n they_o shall_v approve_v of_o our_o neglect_n of_o discipline_n and_o by_o partake_v with_o such_o person_n become_v partaker_n with_o they_o in_o their_o sin_n answ_n admit_v that_o discipline_n be_v too_o much_o want_v in_o our_o church_n and_o that_o sufficient_a care_n be_v seldom_o take_v for_o the_o exclusion_n of_o unworthy_a person_n from_o that_o holy_a ordinance_n how_o be_v it_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o by_o your_o participation_n of_o this_o ordinance_n among_o we_o become_v partaker_n of_o this_o guilt_n do_v you_o by_o thus_o receive_v either_o command_n rejoice_v in_o or_o take_v pleasure_n in_o this_o suppose_a neglect_n no_o your_o objection_n show_v it_o be_v your_o trouble_n do_v you_o consent_v to_o this_o neglect_n by_o join_v with_o we_o in_o this_o ordinance_n if_o so_o then_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v consent_v to_o all_o neglect_n and_o all_o miscarriage_n in_o the_o whole_a public_a worship_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o join_v with_o they_o in_o that_o worship_n then_o must_v the_o regular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n have_v approve_v the_o disorder_n of_o that_o church_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o their_o spiritual_a gift_n by_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o be_v then_o guilty_a of_o they_o and_o so_o they_o must_v have_v be_v oblige_v to_o separate_a on_o that_o account_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n never_o do_v exhort_v they_o so_o to_o do_v but_o only_o do_v advise_v the_o party_n guilty_a to_o amend_v these_o disorder_n and_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n decent_o and_o orderly_o then_o also_o be_v we_o guilty_a of_o all_o the_o imperfection_n both_o in_o prayer_n or_o preach_v of_o which_o that_o minister_n be_v guilty_a with_o who_o we_o join_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n last_o do_v we_o contract_v this_o guilt_n by_o the_o neglect_v of_o our_o duty_n in_o reform_v these_o defect_n alas_o if_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o complain_v of_o such_o defect_n it_o must_v belong_v unto_o the_o governor_n of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o not_o to_o private_a person_n to_o reform_v they_o chap._n ix_o the_o content_n the_o posture_n of_o kneel_v at_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v lawful_a and_o convenient_a and_o separation_n because_o it_o be_v impose_v be_v schismatical_a §_o 1._o to_o the_o objection_n from_o christ_n example_n it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o it_o conclude_v as_o much_o against_o sit_v as_o kneel_v 2_o that_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o imitate_v it_o 3_o that_o christ_n himself_o consent_v to_o a_o like_a change_n of_o the_o paschal_n gesture_n ibid._n to_o the_o objection_n that_o kneel_v before_o a_o creature_n be_v idolatrous_a it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v false_a it_o be_v not_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o element_n which_o do_v induce_v we_o to_o kneel_v 2_o that_o then_o the_o dissenter_n be_v idolater_n 3_o that_o then_o the_o jew_n must_v be_v idolater_n in_o worship_v god_n before_o the_o ark_n or_o mercy_n seat_n 4_o that_o in_o this_o action_n no_o worship_n be_v tender_v to_o a_o creature_n there_o can_v be_v no_o idolatry_n §_o 2._o the_o difference_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o we_o only_o make_v the_o creature_n the_o occasion_n they_o the_o object_n of_o worship_n the_o custom_n of_o our_o church_n in_o bow_v at_o our_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n or_o chancel_n and_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n clear_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o idolatry_n ibid._n to_o the_o objection_n that_o we_o must_v not_o communicate_v in_o this_o ordinance_n with_o wicked_a man_n it_o be_v answer_v 1._o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o they_o do_v communicate_v with_o schismatic_n with_o those_o that_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n and_o rebel_n who_o have_v not_o public_o repent_v of_o that_o sin_n 2_o that_o this_o argument_n will_v drive_v they_o as_o well_o from_o other_o ordinance_n as_o the_o sacrament_n 3_o that_o private_a person_n may_v unblamable_o communicate_v in_o such_o assembly_n the_o precept_n to_o exclude_v they_o be_v not_o direct_v to_o they_o but_o to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o that_o private_a person_n only_o be_v oblige_v to_o withdraw_v from_o such_o person_n in_o familiar_a and_o unnecessary_a converse_v not_o in_o public_a duty_n §_o 3._o the_o great_a objection_n from_o the_o neglect_n of_o discipline_n propose_v in_o these_o proposition_n 1._o that_o the_o exclude_v notorious_a wicked_a person_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o express_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n 2_o that_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o discipline_n do_v high_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o credit_n of_o christianity_n 3_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o preserve_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o pollution_n 4_o that_o probable_o this_o be_v requisite_a to_o preserve_v the_o church_n god_n temple_n and_o to_o continue_v the_o assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n with_o she_o 5_o that_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o great_a duty_n tend_v much_o unto_o the_o detriment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o expose_v she_o to_o god_n judgement_n §_o 4._o to_o which_o objection_n it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o in_o case_n church_n officer_n do_v not_o perform_v their_o duty_n with_o respect_n to_o this_o great_a ordinance_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o people_n duty_n to_o separate_v on_o that_o account_n 2_o that_o although_o excommunication_n be_v the_o duty_n of_o church_n officer_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o a_o duty_n necessary_a to_o be_v exercise_v at_o all_o time_n on_o all_o offender_n in_o all_o circumstance_n 3_o that_o though_o it_o be_v the_o christian_n duty_n to_o withdraw_v from_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o scandalous_a offender_n yet_o be_v this_o only_a then_o a_o duty_n when_o we_o can_v serve_v no_o high_a end_n of_o piety_n and_o mercy_n in_o hold_v correspondence_n with_o they_o 4_o that_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o all_o scandalous_a professor_n deserve_v immediate_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o communion_n with_o we_o §_o 5._o 5ly_n that_o our_o church_n officer_n can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o own_o or_o to_o approve_v of_o this_o suppose_a neglect_n of_o discipline_n and_o that_o if_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n prescribe_v by_o they_o be_v due_o practise_v this_o objection_n will_v vanish_v §_o 6._o that_o the_o continuance_n of_o god_n presence_n by_o his_o spirit_n with_o his_o church_n can_v be_v prove_v entire_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o separation_n of_o wicked_a person_n and_o scandalous_a offender_n from_o she_o §_o 7._o the_o objection_n against_o these_o word_n use_v in_o confirmation_n that_o this_o be_v do_v to_o certify_v they_o by_o this_o sign_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o gracious_a goodness_n to_o they_o answer_v §_o 8._o other_o ceremony_n defend_v from_o the_o ensue_a proposition_n 1._o that_o the_o laudable_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v of_o present_a observation_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o christian_n whence_o be_v justify_v 1._o the_o custom_n of_o deliver_v the_o sacramental_a element_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o communicant_n and_o speakto_n they_o several_o 2_o the_o retain_v of_o godfathers_n and_o godmothers_n 3_o the_o answer_v of_o the_o surety_n in_o baptism_n 4_o the_o use_n of_o the_o ring_n in_o matrimony_n §_o 9_o prop._n 2._o that_o it_o concern_v not_o inferior_n to_o know_v the_o reason_n why_o superior_n do_v command_v one_o thing_n rather_o than_o another_o but_o only_o whether_o what_o they_o do_v command_n be_v not_o forbid_v §_o 10._o prop._n 3._o that_o bodily_a worship_n be_v require_v both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v 1._o kneel_v at_o prayer_n 2._o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n 3._o uncover_v our_o head_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o 4_o stand_v up_o at_o the_o gospel_n the_o reason_n of_o that_o custom_n §_o 11._o the_o church_n festival_n consider_v and_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o some_o of_o they_o prove_v from_o proposition_n lay_v down_o by_o mr._n baxter_n §_o 12._o three_o other_o argument_n for_o the_o expediency_n of_o they_o 1._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o from_o the_o benefit_n which_o may_v redound_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o 3._o from_o the_o continue_a custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n §_o 13._o five_o argument_n of_o mr._n baxter_n
of_o divine_a service_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v mention_v due_a and_o lowly_a reverence_n shall_v be_v do_v by_o all_o person_n present_a as_o it_o have_v be_v accustom_v testify_v by_o these_o outward_a ceremony_n and_o gesture_n their_o inward_a humility_n christian_a resolution_n and_o due_a acknowledgement_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a and_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n in_o who_o alone_o all_o the_o mercy_n grace_n and_o promise_v of_o god_n to_o mankind_n for_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v full_o and_o whole_o comprise_v and_o 3_o when_o we_o kneel_v at_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n communion_n rubric_n after_o the_o communion_n we_o do_v not_o pay_v that_o outward_a act_n of_o worship_n to_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o to_o that_o saviour_n who_o they_o represent_v for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v declare_v that_o thereby_o no_o adoration_n be_v intend_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n there_o bodily_a receive_v so_o that_o from_o the_o express_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o appear_v that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v by_o she_o make_v the_o object_n of_o religious_a worship_n but_o only_o the_o occasion_n of_o tender_v that_o worship_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o thing_n obj._n 3_o we_o be_v command_v to_o separate_a from_o every_o brother_n that_o walk_v disorderly_a 2_o thessaly_n 3.6_o §_o 3_o and_o be_v forbid_v to_o keep_v company_n with_o any_o man_n who_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o we_o must_v not_o eat_v 1_o cor._n 5.11_o and_o if_o we_o may_v not_o eat_v with_o such_o a_o person_n at_o our_o own_o table_n may_v we_o eat_v with_o he_o at_o the_o holy_a table_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o through_o the_o want_n of_o discipline_n such_o person_n be_v admit_v among_o you_o say_v the_o dissenter_n and_o therefore_o we_o dare_v nor_o join_v with_o you_o in_o that_o ordinance_n answ_n 1_o i_o pray_v god_n this_o objection_n do_v not_o make_v you_o meet_v together_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o corinthian_a schismatic_n 11.17_o 1_o cor._n 11.17_o not_o for_o the_o better_a but_o the_o worse_a for_o i_o much_o fear_v there_o may_v be_v find_v in_o those_o assembly_n which_o you_o resort_v to_o as_o more_o pure_a beside_o a_o crew_n of_o schismatic_n with_o who_o according_a to_o the_o discipline_n observe_v in_o the_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o communicate_v many_o who_o rail_v against_o superior_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n and_o many_o who_o have_v once_o be_v open_a rebel_n and_o have_v not_o public_o repent_v of_o those_o crime_n and_o if_o you_o can_v communicate_v with_o they_o why_o not_o with_o such_o as_o usual_o do_v meet_v at_o our_o communion_n table_n the_o wisdom_n which_o be_v from_o above_o be_v impartial_a answ_n 2_o consider_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o this_o argument_n will_v drive_v you_o as_o well_o from_o our_o assembly_n and_o from_o our_o prayer_n as_o from_o our_o communion_n table_n for_o you_o may_v as_o well_o argue_v thus_o he_o that_o i_o may_v not_o keep_v company_n with_o at_o home_n i_o may_v not_o keep_v company_n with_o at_o church_n he_o that_o i_o must_v not_o join_v with_o in_o my_o civil_a converse_n i_o must_v not_o hold_v communion_n with_o in_o sacred_a he_o that_o i_o may_v not_o eat_v with_o i_o may_v not_o pray_v with_o as_o you_o do_v argue_v thus_o he_o that_o i_o may_v not_o eat_v with_o at_o my_o own_o i_o may_v not_o eat_v with_o at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v apparent_a from_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o object_v precept_n viz._n the_o incestuous_a person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o among_o they_o 2._o v._o 2._o to_o be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n v._o 5._o to_o be_v purge_v out_o from_o the_o new_a lump_n v._o 7._o to_o be_v put_v away_o from_o among_o they_o v._o 13._o if_o therefore_o after_o admonition_n they_o continue_v obstinate_a and_o refractory_a offender_n they_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o all_o christ_n ordinance_n and_o to_o be_v esteem_v as_o publican_n and_o heathen_n matt._n 18.17_o according_o they_o by_o the_o discipline_n observe_v in_o the_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v actual_o exclude_v from_o communion_n with_o she_o in_o all_o her_o office_n if_o then_o we_o may_v not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o one_o we_o may_v not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o other_o ordinance_n till_o they_o have_v satisfy_v the_o church_n they_o be_v by_o this_o precept_n equal_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o they_o all_o scripture_n may_v also_o be_v as_o plausible_o produce_v for_o the_o decline_a of_o communion_n with_o they_o in_o public_a prayer_n and_o family_n devotion_n in_o hear_v of_o a_o sermon_n and_o the_o like_a as_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o do_v not_o david_n make_v it_o the_o character_n of_o good_a and_o bless_a man_n that_o they_o stand_v not_o in_o the_o congregation_n of_o sinner_n do_v he_o not_o say_v 101.4_o psal_n 1.1_o psal_n 101.4_o i_o will_v not_o know_v a_o wicked_a person_n answ_n 3_o that_o even_o wicked_a person_n who_o be_v not_o scandalous_o and_o notorious_o such_o but_o make_v profession_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o by_o the_o church_n cast_v out_o for_o act_v contrary_a to_o their_o profession_n may_v be_v unblamable_o communicate_v with_o seem_v undeniable_a from_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o who_o judas_n be_v certain_o admit_v to_o that_o passover_n which_o spiritual_o do_v signify_v and_o represent_v christ_n to_o they_o 1_o cor._n 10.3_o and_o by_o which_o rite_n they_o own_v themselves_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n v._o 18._o whence_o none_o may_v eat_v thereof_o who_o be_v not_o circumcise_a exod._n 12.48_o that_o he_o be_v also_o present_a at_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o have_v full_o prove_v already_o if_o then_o a_o person_n so_o unworthy_a and_o so_o regardless_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o he_o have_v actual_o resolve_v to_o take_v a_o reward_n to_o betray_v innocent-blood_n if_o a_o thief_n 15.5_o psal_n 15.5_o and_o a_o covetous_a person_n be_v by_o our_o lord_n admit_v to_o the_o passover_n if_o one_o who_o by_o our_o lord_n be_v know_v to_o be_v in_o heart_n a_o murderer_n and_o a_o betrayer_n of_o his_o master_n be_v yet_o admit_v by_o he_o to_o his_o sacrament_n you_o see_v that_o sinner_n must_v be_v first_o notorious_a before_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v exclude_v and_o when_o they_o be_v so_o our_o rubric_n and_o our_o canon_n give_v every_o minister_n authority_n to_o withhold_v the_o communion_n from_o they_o and_o therefore_o authorize_v they_o to_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n require_v in_o this_o case_n hence_o also_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o to_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v wicked_a in_o this_o duty_n derive_v upon_o we_o no_o communion_n in_o their_o gild_n for_o otherwise_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o disciple_n will_v not_o have_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o that_o wicked_a one_o answ_n 4_o this_o precept_n be_v not_o direct_v to_o particular_a person_n but_o to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n in_o the_o general_n as_o you_o may_v learn_v from_o v._o 4._o and_o therefore_o hence_o it_o only_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o church_n governor_n to_o exclude_v such_o person_n from_o communion_n with_o she_o but_o not_o that_o private_a person_n shall_v refrain_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n because_o they_o judge_v that_o they_o neglect_v their_o duty_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v never_o read_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o jewish_a church_n or_o do_v neglect_v to_o go_v unto_o the_o temple_n or_o the_o synagogue_n because_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n neglect_v to_o perform_v their_o duty_n and_o our_o apostle_n here_o do_v never_o call_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o separate_v from_o they_o who_o cause_v disorder_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o only_o call_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v those_o disorderly_a proceed_n and_o i_o beseech_v you_o to_o consider_v what_o a_o gap_n will_v be_v lay_v open_a to_o perpetual_a schism_n if_o private_a person_n be_v permit_v to_o judge_v when_o their_o superior_n do_v neglect_v their_o duty_n in_o any_o part_n of_o public_a worship_n
to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n so_o christ_n our_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v now_o offer_v no_o leaven_n of_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n and_o consequent_o no_v such_o wicked_a person_n aught_o to_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o true_a israelite_n but_o whole_o purge_v out_o of_o it_o that_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o discipline_n do_v high_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 2._o prop._n 2._o and_o to_o the_o credit_n of_o christianity_n and_o sure_o this_o can_v be_v doubt_v by_o they_o who_o know_v that_o this_o alone_a be_v that_o by_o which_o the_o church_n can_v be_v preserve_v pure_a and_o like_v unto_o that_o god_n who_o will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n with_o who_o no_o person_n can_v have_v fellowship_n who_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n 1.7_o 1_o joh._n 1.7_o that_o this_o alone_a can_v make_v the_o light_n of_o christian_n to_o shine_v forth_o so_o as_o to_o glorify_v their_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 5.16_o matt._n 5.16_o and_o cause_v they_o to_o show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v they_o from_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n 2.9_o 1_o pet._n 2.9_o and_o that_o this_o only_a can_v render_v we_o able_a to_o commend_v christianity_n to_o other_o from_o the_o prevail_a topic_a of_o the_o strict_a and_o holy_a life_n of_o the_o allow_a professor_n of_o it_o by_o which_o it_o chief_o be_v promote_v in_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n 141._o in_o nobis_fw-la christus_fw-la patitur_fw-la opprobrium_fw-la l_o 4._o p._n 140._o v._n p._n 139._o 141._o that_o the_o name_n and_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v blaspheme_v among_o heathen_n atheist_n sceptic_n and_o profane_a person_n by_o the_o ungodly_a life_n of_o its_o professor_n as_o salvian_n sad_o do_v complain_v and_o by_o find_v many_o who_o be_v own_v as_o christian_n and_o permit_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o high_a ordinance_n and_o privilege_n of_o christian_n who_o lead_n live_v worse_a than_o heathen_n and_o who_o be_v constant_o reject_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o best_a age_n of_o the_o church_n when_o if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o be_v object_v by_o the_o heathen_n that_o such_o person_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n her_o answer_n be_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o nor_o own_a or_o 4._o †_o just_o m._n p._n 70.253.306.308_o vid._n tertull_n ad_fw-la scap._n cap._n 4._o allow_v of_o by_o we_o but_o be_v exclude_v by_o the_o church_n censure_n or_o by_o their_o voluntary_a separation_n which_o may_v deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o exercise_n of_o this_o discipline_n be_v necessary_a to_o perserve_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o pollution_n 3._o prop._n 3._o this_o can_v easy_o be_v question_v 1._o by_o he_o who_o well_o consider_v that_o enquiry_n of_o st._n paul_n know_v you_o not_o that_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n 5.7_o 1_o cor._n 5.7_o purge_v therefore_o the_o old_a leaven_n from_o you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v a_o new_a lump_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o neglect_a evil_a may_v defile_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n say_v oecumenius_n and_o theophylact._n 2._o by_o he_o who_o know_v how_o proper_o be_v the_o shame_n and_o punishment_n inflict_v upon_o other_o for_o confess_v or_o palpable_a enormity_n to_o restrain_v we_o from_o the_o like_a practice_n and_o how_o exceed_o apt_a man_n be_v to_o run_v into_o those_o vice_n without_o fear_n which_o by_o experience_n they_o find_v connive_v at_o by_o superior_n as_o then_o the_o man_n who_o be_v defile_v by_o leprosy_n or_o by_o a_o issue_n 3._o numb_a 5.2_o 3._o or_o dead_a body_n be_v by_o god_n command_n to_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o camp_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o defile_v not_o the_o camp_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o which_o god_n dwell_v so_o on_o the_o same_o account_n shall_v the_o spiritual_a leper_n when_o the_o mark_n evident_o do_v appear_v upon_o he_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o christian_a camp_n that_o he_o desile_v not_o that_o church_n in_o which_o god_n dwell_v now_o as_o in_o his_o temple_n it_o seem_v probable_a that_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o discipline_n be_v that_o which_o will_v alone_o preserve_v the_o church_n god_n temple_n 4._o prop._n 4._o and_o consequent_o will_v continue_v his_o presence_n with_o her_o assembly_n by_o the_o influence_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n on_o they_o in_o great_a efficacy_n and_o measure_n and_o that_o on_o these_o consideration_n 1._o that_o every_o christian_a church_n or_o assembly_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n represent_v as_o god_n temple_n the_o place_n in_o which_o he_o dwell_v as_o he_o of_o old_a dwell_v in_o jerusalem_n for_o by_o inspection_n of_o the_o place_n where_o this_o phrase_n god_n temple_n be_v use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o seem_v evident_a that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o each_o private_a christian_a as_o the_o assembly_n and_o church_n of_o they_o which_o be_v style_v god_n temple_n so_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o the_o corinthian_n in_o the_o general_n know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v dwell_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o you_o 1_o cor._n 3.16_o and_o v._o 17._o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a which_o temple_n you_o be_v so_o also_o 2_o cor._n 6.16_o what_o communion_n have_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n for_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o god_n have_v say_v i_o will_v dwell_v and_o walk_v among_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o people_n and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n which_o word_n be_v manifest_o take_v from_o leu._n 26.11.12_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v speak_v of_o god_n presence_n with_o his_o christian_a church_n the_o israel_n of_o god_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o be_v present_a with_o the_o jewish_a church_n by_o place_v of_o his_o tabernacle_n among_o they_o and_o give_v demonstration_n of_o his_o gracious_a presence_n with_o they_o according_o we_o find_v this_o promise_n make_v with_o respect_n unto_o the_o gospel_n time_n i_o will_v set_v my_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o my_o tabernacle_n also_o shall_v be_v with_o they_o yea_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n ezek._n 37.26_o 27._o thus_o also_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n say_v you_o be_v fellow_n citizen_n of_o the_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n and_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o who_o all_o the_o build_n fit_o frame_v together_o grow_v into_o a_o holy_a temple_n in_o the_o lord_n in_o who_o also_o you_o be_v build_v together_o for_o a_o habitation_n of_o god_n through_o the_o spirit_n ephes_n 2.19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o hence_o last_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n or_o the_o community_n of_o christian_n seem_v to_o be_v style_v christ_n house_n heb._n 3.6_o his_o spiritual_a house_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o 2_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o god_n continue_v to_o dwell_v in_o or_o to_o abide_v with_o this_o his_o temple_n as_o it_o be_v this_o of_o old_a that_o the_o lord_n people_n shall_v be_v holy_a that_o be_v be_v free_a from_o ceremonial_a pollution_n and_o from_o such_o sin_n as_o be_v commit_v wilful_o and_o with_o a_o high_a hand_n against_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o so_o deserve_v cut_v off_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o he_o a_o holy_a nation_n exod._n 19.6_o a_o holy_a people_n deut._n 7.6_o a_o elect_a peculiar_a people_n deut._n 14.2.26.18_o so_o it_o seem_v plain_o now_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v the_o same_o for_o christian_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n call_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 1.2_o col._n 3.22_o a_o choose_a generation_n 1_o pet._n 2.9_o a_o holy_a nation_n and_o peculiar_a people_n ibid._n and_o they_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n call_v to_o come_v out_o from_o the_o son_n of_o belial_n the_o child_n of_o darkness_n and_o unrighteousness_n with_o who_o they_o can_v have_v no_o communion_n and_o to_o be_v separate_a that_o the_o lord_n god_n may_v dwell_v among_o they_o 2_o cor._n 6.16_o 17_o 18._o and_o consequent_o the_o continuance_n of_o god_n spirit_n with_o his_o church_n and_o his_o assistance_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o its_o ordinance_n seem_v likewise_o to_o depend_v on_o their_o continuance_n to_o be_v such_o a_o people_n and_o therefore_o on_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o
that_o account_n be_v never_o in_o the_o least_o insinuate_v this_o therefore_o 44._o principle_n of_o love_n p_o 44._o say_v mr._n baxter_n to_o his_o dissent_v brethren_n you_o may_v observe_v that_o no_o one_o member_n be_v in_o these_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o command_v to_o come_v out_o and_o separate_v from_o any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o church_n as_o if_o communion_n with_o they_o in_o worship_n be_v unlawful_a and_o therefore_o before_o you_o separate_v from_o any_o as_o judge_v communion_n with_o they_o unlawful_a be_v sure_a that_o you_o bring_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o than_o any_o of_o these_o recite_v be_v and_o to_o confirm_v this_o answer_n it_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n express_v injunction_n direct_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n require_v they_o to_o refuse_v communion_n in_o their_o private_a conversation_n with_o such_o person_n or_o to_o renounce_v familiarity_n with_o they_o not_o to_o company_n with_o they_o 1_o cor._n 5.9_o not_o to_o eat_v with_o they_o v._o 11._o to_o mark_v they_o who_o cause_n division_n and_o scandal_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o avoid_v they_o rom._n 16.17_o to_o withdraw_v from_o every_o brother_n that_o walk_v disorderly_a thess_n 2.3_o 6._o to_o have_v no_o company_n with_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v ashamed_a v._o 14._o we_o also_o find_v the_o angel_n or_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n oft_o blame_v for_o this_o neglect_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o incestuous_a person_n the_o case_n of_o pergamos_n and_o thyatira_n where_o they_o be_v suffer_v who_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n of_o balaam_n and_o of_o jezebel_n that_o be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o carnal_a fornication_n this_o i_o have_v against_o thou_o o_o thyatira_n that_o thou_o permit_v jezebel_n locum_fw-la vid._n synop_n in_o locum_fw-la quod_fw-la eam_fw-la non_fw-la coerce_n censuris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la that_o thou_o do_v not_o execute_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o she_o this_o against_o thou_o o_o pergamos_n that_o thou_o have_v those_o who_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balaam_n whereas_o thou_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n as_o do_v the_o angel_n who_o resist_v balaam_n because_o his_o way_n 12.15_o numb_a 22.22_o 23._o hebr._n 12.15_o be_v perverse_a before_o god_n we_o find_v they_o call_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n by_o look_v diligent_o that_o no_o such_o person_n be_v among_o they_o and_o warn_v of_o the_o great_a danger_n that_o the_o whole_a lump_n may_v be_v expose_v to_o by_o such_o sour_a leaven_n we_o lasty_a find_v our_o saviour_n praise_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o he_o can_v not_o bear_v they_o but_o never_o do_v we_o find_v our_o lord_n or_o his_o apostle_n call_v the_o people_n to_o come_v out_o from_o they_o or_o to_o be_v separate_a but_o only_o in_o such_o case_n as_o do_v oblige_v they_o to_o touch_v the_o unclean_a thing_n 6.17_o 2_o cor._n 6.17_o that_o be_v to_o join_v in_o their_o idolatry_n or_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o their_o sin_n from_o which_o consideration_n 18.4_o rev._n 18.4_o it_o follow_v as_o estius_n well_o note_n that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o tolerate_v such_o person_n in_o the_o church_n offend_v and_o that_o the_o people_n who_o use_v familiar_a converse_n with_o they_o do_v likewise_o offend_v but_o it_o by_o no_o mean_n follow_v that_o they_o who_o do_v perform_v the_o public_a duty_n of_o religion_n where_o they_o be_v present_a do_v offend_v and_o as_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a dr._n 217._o unreas_n of_o sep._n p._n 217._o stillingfleet_n well_o note_n there_o be_v many_o reason_n to_o break_v off_o private_a familiarity_n which_o will_v not_o hold_v as_o to_o public_a communion_n and_o which_o may_v render_v it_o the_o christian_n duty_n to_o do_v the_o first_o and_o not_o the_o latter_a for_o our_o communion_n in_o public_a be_v a_o thing_n which_o chief_o respect_v god_n and_o be_v a_o necessary_a duty_n of_o his_o own_o appoint_v the_o benefit_n whereof_o depend_v upon_o his_o promise_n and_o all_o the_o communion_n we_o have_v with_o other_o man_n therein_o be_v only_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o judas_n at_o the_o paschal_n supper_n join_v together_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o a_o common_a religious_a duty_n but_o private_a familiarity_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o whole_o respect_v the_o person_n we_o converse_v with_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o mere_a choice_n and_o of_o much_o danger_n it_o be_v hardly_o to_o be_v imagine_v without_o approbation_n at_o least_o if_o not_o imitation_n of_o their_o wickedness_n and_o to_o this_o the_o concurrent_a judgement_n of_o the_o old_a nonconformist_n who_o do_v not_o think_v this_o want_n of_o discipline_n sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o communion_n with_o we_o for_o have_v lay_v this_o as_o a_o foundation_n that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o separate_v from_o a_o true_a church_n require_v nothing_o sinful_a of_o he_o 18._o grav_n confut_o p._n 18._o in_o order_n to_o communion_n with_o they_o they_o add_v that_o although_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o we_o want_v both_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o church_n censure_n and_o some_o of_o those_o officer_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v to_o exercise_v they_o by_o yet_o may_v we_o be_v a_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o as_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n in_o judah_n all_o the_o day_n of_o asa_n and_o jehosaphat_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o discipline_n reform_v there_o till_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o jehosaphats_n reign_n the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v a_o true_a church_n even_o when_o the_o apostle_n blame_v they_o for_o want_v of_o discipline_n the_o congregation_n of_o samaria_n be_v call_v a_o church_n before_o the_o discipline_n be_v establish_v there_o and_o even_o in_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v a_o famous_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n long_o before_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o discipline_n for_o want_v whereof_o they_o condemn_v we_o be_v establish_v there_o yea_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o divers_a church_n be_v gather_v some_o good_a space_n of_o time_n before_o the_o discipline_n be_v settle_v or_o exercise_v by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o howsoever_o those_o part_n of_o the_o discipline_n which_o we_o want_v be_v necessary_a to_o the_o beauty_n and_o well_o be_v and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v thereof_o but_o a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v without_o they_o 2_o they_o add_v 51.52_o ibid._n p._n 51.52_o that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o private_a person_n to_o set_v up_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o will_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o declare_v that_o in_o so_o do_v they_o shall_v high_o offend_v they_o be_v bind_v say_v giffard_n 102._o p._n 59_o 95_o 100_o 101_o 102._o by_o the_o band_n of_o conscience_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n from_o presume_v to_o take_v upon_o they_o public_a authority_n and_o if_o so_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o can_v choose_v pastor_n for_o themselves_o and_o set_v up_o other_o church_n and_o church_n governor_n to_o exercise_v the_o church_n discipline_n because_o they_o do_v conceive_v it_o be_v neglect_v by_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n and_o other_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o last_o let_v i_o ask_v our_o dissent_v brethren_n if_o on_o account_n of_o this_o suppose_a neglect_n of_o discipline_n they_o think_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o desert_n communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whether_o will_v they_o go_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o know_v beside_o her_o other_o error_n be_v more_o guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n than_o we_o man_n may_v be_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o communion_n provide_v that_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n and_o still_o be_v own_v as_o genuine_a member_n of_o their_o church_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v as_o loose_v as_o we_o their_o member_n general_o be_v as_o corrupt_v in_o manner_n as_o we_o be_v the_o same_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o the_o eastern_a church_n they_o therefore_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o can_v lawful_o maintain_v communion_n with_o any_o other_o church_n on_o this_o account_n and_o that_o there_o always_o be_v even_o since_o the_o reformation_n a_o necessity_n of_o separation_n from_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o this_o neglect_n of_o discipline_n or_o that_o they_o notwithstanding_o this_o suppose_a neglect_n may_v hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o have_v
the_o fire_v of_o london_n the_o thirty_o of_o january_n a_o day_n of_o humiliation_n for_o the_o execrable_a murder_n of_o our_o r._n martyr_n charles_n the_o first_o and_o that_o none_o can_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o doubt_v if_o they_o consider_v 7.5_o est_fw-la 9.28_o 1_o macch._n 4.59_o zech._n 7.5_o that_o the_o feast_n of_o purim_n and_o of_o dedication_n be_v lawful_o appoint_v by_o the_o jew_n for_o a_o ordinance_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o state_v fast_n of_o the_o five_o and_o the_o seven_o month_n to_o humble_v themselves_o at_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o judgement_n god_n then_o bring_v upon_o they_o 3._o he_o add_v that_o the_o great_a blessing_n of_o a_o apostolic_a ministry_n and_o of_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o martyr_n in_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n be_v so_o rare_a and_o notable_a a_o mercy_n to_o the_o church_n i_o confess_v i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o all_o succeed_a age_n may_v not_o keep_v a_o anniversary_n day_n of_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o stephen_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o powder-plot_n deliverance_n i_o know_v not_o where_o god_n have_v forbid_v it_o direct_o or_o indirect_o if_o his_o institute_v the_o lord's-day_n be_v a_o virtual_a prohibition_n for_o man_n to_o separate_v any_o more_o or_o if_o the_o prohibition_n of_o add_v to_o god_n word_n be_v against_o it_o they_o will_v be_v against_o other_o day_n of_o humiliation_n or_o thanksgiving_n especial_o anniversary_n day_n which_o we_o confess_v they_o be_v not_o if_o the_o reason_n be_v scandal_n lest_o man_n shall_v have_v the_o honour_n instead_o of_o god_n i_o answer_v 1._o a_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n in_o their_o place_n in_o due_a subordination_n to_o god_n 2_o where_o the_o case_n of_o scandal_n be_v notorious_a it_o may_v become_v by_o that_o accident_n unlawful_a 7._o const_n &_o can._n an._n 1640._o can._n 7._o and_o yet_o not_o be_v so_o in_o other_o time_n and_o place_n 3_o our_o church_n express_o have_v declare_v that_o she_o give_v religious_a worship_n unto_o god_n alone_o and_o do_v observe_v these_o day_n to_o god_n and_o in_o they_o celebrate_v his_o praise_n for_o his_o apostle_n and_o for_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n vouchsafe_v to_o they_o and_o the_o great_a thing_n do_v through_o that_o assistance_n by_o they_o for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n and_o so_o can_v minister_v no_o ground_n for_o such_o a_o scandal_n 4_o 150._o p._n 150._o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o lawful_a observation_n of_o day_n it_o be_v most_o orderly_o to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v which_o we_o live_v among_o and_o be_v to_o join_v with_o especial_o if_o they_o do_v only_o that_o which_o have_v be_v do_v by_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n about_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n and_o upward_a as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o our_o public_a festival_n or_o that_o which_o have_v be_v do_v from_o the_o beginning_n as_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o easter_n festival_n 5_o 151._o p._n 151._o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v long_o ago_o decide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 14.15_o that_o we_o must_v not_o be_v contentious_a contemptuous_a nor_o censorious_a against_o one_o another_o about_o thing_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n than_o the_o jewish_a day_n be_v though_o some_o observe_v they_o without_o just_a cause_n because_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o day_n but_o in_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o he_o that_o in_o these_o thing_n serve_v christ_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o approve_v of_o man_n we_o must_v follow_v therefore_o after_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v for_o peace_n and_o wherewith_o one_o may_v edify_v another_o which_o by_o submit_v to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n concern_v festival_n dissenter_n certain_o will_v do_v if_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o edification_n by_o hear_v and_o join_v in_o good_a prayer_n and_o praise_n by_o read_v of_o the_o word_n by_o hear_v of_o good_a sermon_n and_o by_o commemoration_n of_o the_o mercy_n we_o then_o celebrate_v §_o 13_o and_o whereas_o mr._n baxter_n add_v that_o the_o controversy_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o keep_v day_n as_o holy_a in_o celebrate_v the_o memorial_n of_o christ_n nativity_n circumcision_n ascension_n etc._n etc._n 46._o p._n 151_o 152._o disp_n 5._o of_o cer._n cap._n 2._o §_o 46._o be_v the_o hard_a part_n of_o this_o question_n which_o he_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o determine_v i_o shall_v first_o lay_v down_o some_o few_o argument_n to_o justify_v the_o observation_n of_o these_o and_o other_o holiday_n prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o consider_v the_o scruple_n he_o and_o other_o have_v against_o they_o and_o 1._o i_o argue_v for_o the_o expedience_n of_o these_o holiday_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o those_o thing_n say_v st._n austin_n be_v celebrate_v by_o the_o church_n anniverssary_n which_o be_v very_o excelelnt_a when_o do_v 12._o contra_fw-la faustum_n manichaun_n lib._n 32._o cap._n 12._o and_o by_o their_o excellency_n have_v signalise_v certain_a day_n that_o so_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o festival_n may_v preserve_v the_o whole_a some_o remembrance_n of_o they_o in_o our_o heart_n now_o even_o reason_n teach_v that_o the_o day_n on_o which_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v tend_v to_o excite_v the_o mind_n to_o more_o intent_n consideration_n of_o and_o so_o to_o effectual_a remembrance_n of_o the_o mercy_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v upon_o that_o day_n whence_o god_n himself_o require_v his_o people_n to_o remember_v that_o day_n in_o which_o they_o come_v out_o from_o egypt_n out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o bondage_n exod._n 13.3_o and_o of_o that_o very_a night_n he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o night_n to_o be_v much_o observe_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n this_o be_v that_o night_n to_o be_v observe_v of_o all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n in_o their_o generation_n exod._n 12.42_o now_o if_o for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o mercy_n god_n do_v not_o only_o order_v his_o people_n israel_n to_o be_v continual_o meditate_v and_o discourse_v of_o it_o exod._n 12.26_o 13_o 14._o but_o also_o to_o observe_v the_o very_a day_n for_o a_o memorial_n exod._n 12.14_o if_o he_o appoint_v the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o memory_n of_o the_o law_n then_o give_v from_o mount_n sinai_n to_o they_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n in_o remembrance_n of_o their_o sustentation_n forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n why_o may_v not_o christian_n though_o oblige_v daily_o to_o have_v these_o thing_n in_o their_o remembrance_n observean_v annual_a festivity_n for_o the_o more_o full_a commemoration_n of_o the_o mercy_n they_o enjoy_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n nativity_n ascension_n etc._n etc._n again_o these_o feast_n have_v be_v institute_v and_o observe_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o the_o benefit_n vouchsafe_v to_o we_o at_o those_o time_n and_o by_o such_o person_n now_o public_a benefit_n be_v public_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o celebrate_v with_o public_a thanks_o which_o can_v better_o be_v perform_v than_o by_o prescribe_v state_v day_n for_o public_o assemble_v to_o these_o end_n and_o as_o st._n paul_n declare_v that_o the_o great_a liberality_n of_o the_o corinthian_n will_v glorify_v god_n by_o cause_v many_o thanksgiving_n to_o he_o for_o that_o grace_n 9.12_o 2_o cor._n 9.12_o so_o will_v the_o institution_n of_o such_o festival_n tend_v to_o his_o glory_n by_o cause_v many_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o grace_n vouchsafe_v to_o we_o upon_o these_o day_n both_o to_o we_o and_o to_o those_o martyr_n and_o apostle_n who_o memory_n we_o celebrate_v moreover_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v bu●_n the_o benefit_n flow_v from_o the_o great_a action_n of_o ou●_n saviour_n and_o the_o advantage_n accrue_v to_o we_o fro●_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n by_o their_o faithful_a preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o give_v testimony_n by_o their_o suffering_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sam●_n doctrine_n be_v to_o we_o more_o valuable_a and_o advantageous_a than_o any_o temporal_a benefit_n whatsoever_o if_o then_o 〈◊〉_d be_v esteem_v high_o convenient_a to_o celebrate_v o●●_n deliverance_n from_o the_o gun-powder-plot_n th●_n happy_a restoration_n of_o our_o prince_n our_o law_n an●_n liberties_n with_o constant_a anniverssary_n have_v w●_n not_o equal_a reason_n to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n o●_n those_o great_a spiritual_a mercy_n by_o like_a anniverssary_n 2_o this_o may_v be_v further_o argue_v from_o th●_n utility_n and_o benefit_n which_o
may_v redound_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o observation_n of_o these_o festival_n unto_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n now_o she_o appoint_v they_o to_o be_v employ_v in_o hear_v of_o god_n word_n read_v and_o teach_v in_o public_a prayer_n 20._o can._n 13._o &_o injunct_a q_o eliz._n 1559._o n._n 20._o in_o acknowledge_v our_o offence_n to_o god_n and_o amendment_n of_o the_o same_o in_o be_v reconcile_v to_o our_o neighbour_n where_o there_o have_v be_v displeasure_n in_o oft_o receive_v the_o communion_n in_o visit_v the_o poor_a and_o sick_a and_o use_v all_o sober_a and_o godly_a conversation_n which_o christian_a fruit_n of_o piety_n be_v they_o more_o plentiful_o bring_v forth_o they_o will_v sufficient_o recommend_v those_o time_n and_o season_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o they_o and_o sure_o the_o benefit_n of_o such_o holy_a exercise_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o use_n of_o particular_a time_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v though_o some_o man_n do_v abuse_v they_o to_o far_o other_o end_n and_o if_o dissenter_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o appoint_v weekly_a lecture_n for_o some_o of_o these_o good_a end_n why_o may_v not_o our_o church_n governor_n appoint_v these_o anniverssary_n for_o the_o promotion_n of_o they_o all_o especial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o they_o be_v so_o exceed_o profitable_a unto_o the_o weak_a sort_n of_o christian_n who_o be_v instruct_v by_o they_o in_o many_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o cause_v to_o reflect_v on_o many_o signal_n mercy_n which_o they_o may_v entire_o forget_v do_v not_o these_o day_n return_v to_o strengthen_v and_o rub_v up_o their_o memory_n the_o common_a sort_n of_o those_o who_o seem_v to_o be_v believer_n want_v these_o remembrance_n say_v origen_n 393._o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la l._n 8._o p._n 393._o that_o such_o thing_n may_v not_o slip_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n and_o so_o these_o festival_n must_v needs_o be_v useful_a to_o they_o for_o this_o end_n and_o since_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n prescribe_v day_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o chief_a thing_n that_o either_o be_v perform_v by_o or_o happen_v to_o our_o saviour_n if_o the_o plain_a man_n say_v bishop_n hall_n will_v but_o ply_v well_o his_o almanac_n that_o alone_o will_v teach_v he_o so_o much_o gospel_n as_o to_o show_v he_o the_o history_n of_o his_o saviour_n 15._o remain_v serm._n on_o 1_o joh._n 15._o for_o there_o upon_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o annunciation_n may_v he_o see_v his_o saviour_n conception_n declare_v by_o a_o angel_n upon_o the_o feast_n of_o 〈◊〉_d nativity_n he_o may_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v bo●●_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o at_o last_o after_o infinal_n and_o beneficial_a miracle_n he_o will_v see_v he_o capacify_v on_o good_a friday_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d easter_n and_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n on_o holy_a thu●●day_n and_o may_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o these_o thi●●●_n by_o come_v to_o the_o church_n which_o have_v excellent_o fit_v these_o solemnity_n with_o service_n which_o 〈◊〉_d explain_v their_o meaning_n and_o the_o use_n we_o be_v to_o m●●●_n of_o they_o if_o then_o we_o be_v to_o follow_v after_o the_o thi●●_n whereby_o we_o may_v edify_v one_o another_o 14.19_o rom._n 14.19_o we_o must_v continue_v the_o observation_n of_o these_o festival_n 3_o that_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o observe_v these_o 〈◊〉_d be_v evident_a from_o the_o continue_a custom_n of_o the_o w●●●●_n church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v laudable_a and_o de●●●●_n to_o observe_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n and_o to_o conform_v to_o her_o example_n 〈◊〉_d in_o thing_n no_o where_n forbid_v by_o the_o word_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v reasonable_a to_o judge_v she_o have_v good_a 〈◊〉_d to_o do_v what_o be_v so_o universal_o perform_v who●●_n st._n 11.16_o 1_o cor._n 14.33_o &_o 11.16_o paul_n do_v admonish_v his_o corinthian_n to_o do_v as_o 〈◊〉_d all_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v do_v and_o do_v pronounce_v he_o a_o contentious_a person_n who_o 〈◊〉_d thwart_o her_o custom_n now_o all_o these_o festival_n of_o christ_n nativity_n his_o passion_n resurrection_n cension_n and_o of_o the_o advent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v by_o 1._o by_o illa_fw-la autem_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la scripta_fw-la sed_fw-la tradita_fw-la custodimus_fw-la quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la toto_fw-la terrarum_fw-la orbe_fw-la observantur_fw-la dantur_fw-la intelligi_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la apostolis_n vel_fw-la plenariis_fw-la conciliis_fw-la 〈…〉_o atque_fw-la statuta_fw-la retineri_fw-la slucti_fw-la quod_fw-la domini_fw-la passio_fw-la &_o resurrectio_fw-la &_o 〈…〉_o in_o caelum_fw-la &_o adventus_fw-la de_fw-la caelum_fw-la spiritsis_fw-la sancti_fw-la anniversaria_fw-la sole●●●●e_fw-la celbrantur_fw-la &_o st_o quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la cale_fw-la occurrerit_fw-la quod_fw-la servatur_fw-la ab_fw-la universa_fw-la quacunque_fw-la se_fw-la diffundit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la epist_n 1.18_o cap._n 1._o vid._n epist_n 119._o cap._n 1._o st._n austin_n reckon_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v observe_v ab_fw-la universa_fw-la quacunque_fw-la se_fw-la diffundit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la by_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n and_o which_o he_o therefore_o do_v conjecture_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o derive_v itself_o from_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n since_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a unto_o all_o learned_a man_n that_o all_o the_o holiday_n prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o four_o century_n at_o least_o be_v universal_o observe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n it_o must_v be_v fit_a and_o laudable_a to_o conform_v to_o her_o example_n by_o observe_v of_o they_o as_o she_o do_v now_o to_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n of_o mr._n 46._o disp_n 5._o of_o cer._n cap._n 2._o §._o 46._o baxter_n against_o the_o holiday_n forementioned_a of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v object_n 1_o object_n 1._o §_o 14_o that_o the_o occasion_n of_o these_o holiday_n be_v existent_a in_o the_o apostle_n day_n if_o therefore_o god_n will_v have_v have_v such_o day_n observe_v he_o can_v as_o easy_o and_o fit_o have_v do_v it_o by_o his_o apostle_n in_o scripture_n as_o he_o do_v other_o the_o like_a thing_n answer_n 1._o this_o argument_n confute_v his_o former_a grant_n that_o the_o festival_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n may_v lawful_o be_v observe_v for_o of_o the_o protomartyr_n st._n stephen_n and_o of_o james_n the_o brother_n of_o john_n kill_v by_o the_o sword_n 12.2_o act._n 12.2_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_v and_o yet_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o festival_n nor_o do_v the_o belove_a disciple_n though_o he_o survive_v the_o rest_n of_o christ_n apostle_n mention_n in_o his_o epistle_n or_o his_o revelation_n any_o thing_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o they_o which_o notwithstanding_o mr._n baxter_n and_o which_o be_v more_o considerable_a 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o second_o century_n approve_v of_o observing_z martyrum_fw-la natalitia_fw-la the_o birth_n day_n of_o the_o martyr_n that_o be_v the_o day_n when_o they_o be_v crown_v with_o martyrdom_n with_o great_a solemnity_n witness_v the_o *_o epistle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n touch_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o polycarp_n 2_o by_o this_o argument_n no_o place_n may_v be_v set_v apart_o for_o celebration_n of_o god_n public_a worship_n no_o church_n and_o no_o tabernacle_n may_v be_v erect_v for_o that_o end_n no_o time_n appoint_v for_o that_o worship_n no_o synod_n may_v convene_v no_o presbyterian_a class_n may_v assemble_v to_o determine_v any_o matter_n or_o make_v any_o rule_n for_o the_o due_a government_n of_o christian_n no_o form_n of_o prayer_n except_v the_o lord_n prayer_n may_v be_v use_v in_o publck_n no_o word_n in_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n to_o omit_v many_o other_o thing_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n but_o what_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v prescribe_v in_o scripture_n for_o if_o god_n will_v have_v have_v such_o thing_n do_v the_o occasion_n of_o they_o be_v existent_a in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o he_o can_v as_o easy_o and_o fit_o by_o his_o apostle_n have_v give_v command_n concern_v they_o as_o touch_v other_o the_o like_a thing_n 3_o this_o argument_n condemn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o great_a nicene_n council_n for_o pray_v stand_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n the_o occasion_n of_o it_o be_v as_o old_a as_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n and_o it_o condemn_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o her_o discipline_n concern_v penitent_n her_o stationary_a day_n and_o almost_o all_o her_o other_o rite_n the_o occasion_n of_o which_o be_v as_o well_o existent_a in_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o in_o succeed_a age_n and_o
which_o must_v therefore_o be_v unlawful_a according_a to_o this_o argument_n because_o prescribe_v by_o no_o apostle_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o be_v a_o business_n which_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a will_v be_v equal_o necessary_a to_o all_o age_n ibid._n ob._n 2._o ibid._n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v necessary_a but_o it_o must_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o a_o universal_a law_n now_o god_n have_v make_v no_o such_o law_n in_o scripture_n and_o so_o scripture_n sufficiency_n as_o the_o catholic_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o universal_a obedience_n be_v utter_o overthrow_v answer_n the_o answer_v give_v to_o the_o first_o objection_n do_v also_o manifest_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o for_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o be_v say_v of_o the_o festivity_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o martyr_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o feast_n of_o christmas_n the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n that_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v they_o must_v be_v necessary_a to_o all_o age_n that_o god_n in_o scripture_n have_v make_v no_o law_n concern_v they_o etc._n etc._n may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o be_v say_v that_o if_o public_a assembly_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v set_v apart_o now_o that_o if_o any_o unprescribed_a form_n of_o prayer_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v use_v now_o or_o any_o word_n in_o scripture_n not_o prescribe_v in_o consecration_n or_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o if_o stand_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n in_o time_n of_o prayer_n if_o stationary_a day_n if_o the_o penitential_a discipline_n observe_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v necessary_a in_o any_o age_n or_o part_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v be_v necessary_a in_o all_o age_n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o god_n have_v in_o scripture_n make_v no_o law_n concern_v they_o and_o so_o scripture_n sufficiency_n be_v and_o be_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o overthrow_v 2_o though_o we_o do_v judge_v the_o observation_n of_o these_o festival_n expedient_a yet_o we_o by_o no_o mean_n hold_v it_o necessary_a not_o by_o necessity_n of_o precept_n for_o we_o pretend_v not_o to_o any_o precept_n of_o this_o kind_n not_o as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v god_n may_v be_v due_o praise_v and_o worship_v and_o magnify_v for_o the_o mercy_n we_o then_o celebrate_v on_o other_o day_n and_o therefore_o we_o confess_v that_o 16._o that_o non_fw-la putandum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christianam_fw-la aliquancessitate_n astringi_fw-la ad_fw-la obser_fw-la vationem_fw-la immotam_fw-la festorum_fw-la dierum_fw-la sed_fw-la statuendum_fw-la dies_fw-la hosee_fw-fr humanâ_fw-la authoritateconstitutos_fw-la eddem_fw-la posse_fw-la tolli_fw-la &_o mutari_fw-la etc._n etc._n dau._n in_o coloss_n 2._o v._n 16._o if_o the_o church_n think_v fit_a she_o may_v leave_v all_o man_n to_o their_o liberty_n in_o the_o observe_n or_o not_o observe_v of_o these_o day_n only_o we_o add_v that_o sure_o the_o general_n rule_n of_o do_v all_o thing_n for_o edification_n will_v warrant_v her_o appointment_n of_o they_o for_o the_o forementioned_a end_n as_o well_o as_o the_o appointment_n of_o a_o lecture-day_n or_o of_o a_o sermon_n before_o the_o assize_n god_n himself_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n as_o these_o be_v pretend_v for_o ibid._n ob._n 3._o ibid._n for_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v to_o commemorate_v the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o great_a triumphant_a act_n of_o the_o redeemer_n imply_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o work_n so_o that_o though_o it_o be_v principal_o for_o the_o resurrection_n above_o any_o single_a work_n of_o christ_n yet_o also_o for_o all_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o the_o whole_a be_v on_o that_o day_n to_o be_v commemorate_a with_o holy_a joy_n and_o praise_n now_o when_o god_n himself_o have_v set_v apart_o one_o day_n in_o every_o week_n to_o commemorate_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o redemption_n it_o seem_v a_o accuse_v of_o his_o institution_n of_o insufficiency_n to_o come_v after_o he_o to_o mend_v they_o and_o say_v we_o must_v have_v a_o anniversary_n day_n for_o this_o or_o that_o part_n of_o the_o work_n answer_n 1._o that_o god_n do_v institute_v the_o lord_n day_n for_o the_o particular_a commemoration_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o the_o redemption_n be_v gratis_o dictum_fw-la what_o scripture_n or_o what_o declaration_n of_o any_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v so_o 2_o this_o argument_n make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o set_v up_o a_o lecture_n upon_o any_o day_n but_o the_o lord_n day_n for_o that_o day_n be_v appoint_v for_o public_a read_n and_o hear_v of_o god_n holy_a word_n for_o man_n to_o set_v up_o another_o day_n for_o that_o end_n be_v to_o accuse_v his_o institution_n of_o insufficiency_n 3_o this_o argument_n condemn_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n for_o they_o do_v then_o observe_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n and_o so_o though_o god_n have_v set_v apart_o a_o weekly_a commemoration_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o do_v come_v after_o he_o and_o observe_v a_o anniversary_n day_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o so_o according_a to_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v do_v more_o apparent_o accuse_v his_o institution_n of_o insufficiency_n 4_o this_o objection_n seem_v to_o accuse_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n own_o institution_n for_o though_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n be_v institute_v with_o a_o peculiar_a respect_n to_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n deut._n 5.15_o yet_o for_o that_o mercy_n which_o be_v far_o inferior_a to_o those_o which_o christian_n do_v enjoy_v by_o our_o lord_n birth_n his_o death_n his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n he_o require_v other_o solemnity_n to_o be_v observe_v yearly_o viz._n the_o great_a feast_n of_o the_o passover_n why_o therefore_o may_v not_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o imitation_n of_o this_o pattern_n beside_o the_o lord_n day_n weekly_o set_v apart_o for_o celebrate_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n require_v other_o solemnity_n to_o be_v observe_v yearly_o for_o a_o peculiar_a commemoration_n of_o the_o most_o signal_n part_n of_o that_o redemption_n obj._n 4_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v one_o of_o the_o decalogue_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o so_o high_a a_o nature_n that_o man_n must_v not_o presume_v to_o make_v the_o like_a ibid._n ibid._n but_o it_o seem_v a_o do_v the_o same_o or_o of_o like_a nature_n to_o what_o god_n have_v do_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n if_o any_o man_n will_v make_v a_o necessary_a state_v holy_a day_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n answer_n 1._o who_o go_v about_o to_o make_v a_o necessary_a state_v holy_a day_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n sure_o none_o beside_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o give_v law_n unto_o she_o but_o what_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o observe_v i_o hope_v our_o church_n may_v prudent_o comply_v with_o and_o call_v upon_o her_o child_n so_o to_o do_v 2_o be_v not_o this_o do_v as_o much_o by_o the_o state_v festival_n which_o you_o allow_v of_o as_o by_o those_o you_o do_v condemn_v be_v it_o not_o do_v as_o much_o by_o appoint_v the_o feast_n of_o purim_n to_o be_v observe_v yearly_o and_o by_o ordain_v that_o these_o day_n shall_v be_v remember_v and_o keep_v throughout_o every_o generation_n 28._o esth_n 9.27_o 28._o every_o family_n every_o province_n and_o every_o city_n and_o that_o these_o day_n of_o purim_n shall_v not_o fail_v from_o among_o the_o jew_n nor_o the_o memorial_n of_o they_o perish_v from_o their_o seed_n be_v it_o not_o do_v as_o much_o by_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o ordain_v that_o the_o day_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o altar_n shall_v be_v observe_v from_o year_n to_o year_n by_o the_o space_n of_o eight_o day_n and_o yet_o neither_o our_o lord_n 4.59_o 1_o macc._n 4.59_o nor_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n charge_v they_o with_o violation_n of_o the_o four_o commandment_n on_o that_o account_n or_o with_o presume_v to_o do_v the_o like_a to_o that_o which_o god_n have_v do_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o object_n 5_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n sure_o we_o be_v there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o there_o be_v no_o law_n of_o god_n command_v christmas_n or_o other_o holiday_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o trangression_n in_o not_o keep_v they_o but_o than_o it_o be_v not_o sure_a that_o there_o be_v no_o transgression_n in_o keep_v they_o therefore_o the_o sure_a side_n be_v to_o be_v take_v answer_n 1._o that_o this_o argument_n plain_o destroy_v his_o former_a grant_n of_o the_o expedience_n of_o observe_v and_o enjoin_v other_o holiday_n for_o which_o no_o law_n of_o god_n command_v they_o can_v be_v produce_v 2_o that_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v retort_v thus_o
such_o also_o be_v undoubted_o the_o gift_n vouchsafe_v to_o timothy_n such_o be_v prophecy_n teach_v exhortation_n 1_o cor._n 12.10_o 29.14.3_o such_o also_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ministry_n for_o the_o deacon_n be_v to_o be_v man_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o wisdom_n act_n 6.3_o and_o they_o most_o likely_a be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d help_v mention_v among_o spiritual_a gift_n 1_o cor_fw-la 12.28_o and_o if_o so_o all_o these_o place_n must_v be_v impertinent_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o ordinary_a gift_n may_v not_o be_v stint_v answ_n 3_o these_o precept_n can_v rational_o be_v suppose_v to_o enjoin_v the_o use_n of_o any_o of_o these_o gift_n far_o than_o may_v consist_v with_o order_n and_o edification_n the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o subjection_n to_o the_o prophet_n and_o then_o they_o can_v so_o enjoin_v their_o exercise_n as_o to_o disturb_v her_o order_n peace_n and_o union_n and_o to_o oppose_v ourselves_o to_o the_o prescription_n of_o her_o prophet_n especial_o consider_v that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o whole_o lay_v restraint_n upon_o the_o use_n of_o this_o suppose_a gift_n no_o not_o in_o public_a but_o do_v permit_v we_o to_o exercise_v it_o in_o our_o prayer_n before_o and_o after_o sermon_n object_n 4_o 4_o it_o be_v object_v thus_o that_o god_n promise_v under_o the_o gospel_n time_n to_o pour_v out_o upon_o his_o people_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n 12.10_o zech._n 12.10_o and_o such_o a_o spirit_n be_v give_v as_o be_v all_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n must_v not_o be_v hinder_v answ_n 1_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a evidence_n that_o god_n here_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o prayer_n for_o what_o we_o render_v supplication_n be_v by_o divers_a interpreter_n the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v the_o septuagint_n the_o syriack_n and_o arabic_a version_n agreeable_o to_o the_o derivation_n of_o the_o word_n render_v mercy_n and_o compassion_n by_o other_o the_o spirit_n of_o lamentation_n answ_n 2_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n that_o god_n here_o promise_v the_o gift_n of_o pray_v fluent_o by_o the_o immediate_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o what_o be_v promise_v here_o be_v not_o spiritual_a hymn_n or_o prayer_n not_o that_o they_o shall_v fluent_o express_v themselves_o in_o prayer_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o shall_v mourn_v so_o that_o man_n may_v with_o equal_a reason_n argue_v hence_o for_o extemporary_a sorrow_n and_o against_o such_o consideration_n as_o serve_v to_o work_v this_o sorrow_n in_o we_o as_o for_o extemporary_a prayer_n and_o against_o such_o consideration_n as_o may_v prepare_v we_o to_o put_v up_o our_o address_n due_o to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n answ_n 3_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n be_v promise_v here_o this_o promise_n do_v respect_v our_o age_n and_o man_n may_v argue_v with_o equal_a reason_n from_o the_o promise_n make_v by_o joel_n 2.28_o joel_n 2.28_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n god_n will_v pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o may_v now_o expect_v prophetic_a vision_n dream_n and_o prophesying_n as_o from_o this_o promise_n of_o the_o prophet_n zechary_n that_o we_o may_v now_o expect_v the_o miraculous_a assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o prayer_n object_n 5_o it_o be_v say_v 1_o cor._n 14_o 15._o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n §_o 2_o now_o though_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o a_o argument_n in_o these_o word_n to_o countenance_v extemporary_a prayer_n yet_o may_v it_o be_v useful_a for_o undeceive_v some_o of_o our_o dissenter_n to_o observe_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v when_o this_o epistle_n be_v indict_v a_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o prayer_n which_o christian_n exercise_v in_o their_o assembly_n by_o the_o immediate_a assistance_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 12_o chapter_n of_o this_o epistle_n propound_v to_o treat_v touch_v spiritual_a gift_n begin_v of_o his_o treatise_n thus_o concern_v spiritual_a gift_n 12.1_o 1_o cor._n 12.1_o brethren_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a and_o this_o discourse_n he_o carry_v on_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 14_o chapter_n where_o in_o the_o 15_o v._n we_o read_v these_o word_n i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o to_o pray_v then_o with_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o pray_v with_o this_o spiritual_a gift_n for_o of_o those_o gift_n the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o appli_v this_o spiritual_a gift_n to_o prayer_n say_v i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v certain_a he_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v then_o a_o spiritual_a gift_n in_o the_o church_n enable_v they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o pray_v in_o word_n suggest_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o to_o make_v and_o utter_v upon_o the_o sudden_a a_o new_a prayer_n suit_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o then_o present_a church_n of_o god_n 2_o it_o be_v extreme_o evident_a that_o pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n then_o be_v use_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n in_o prayer_n as_o be_v apparent_a from_o these_o word_n if_o i_o pray_v with_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n my_o spirit_n pray_v v._o 14._o i._n e._n my_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v exercise_v and_o 2_o because_o the_o idiot_n can_v not_o say_v amen_o to_o he_o that_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n because_o he_o understand_v not_o what_o he_o say_v v._o 16._o 3ly_n from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o speak_v with_o tongue_n more_o than_o you_o all_o and_o yet_o have_v rather_o speak_v five_o word_n in_o the_o church_n with_o my_o understanding_n that_o i_o may_v teach_v other_o than_o ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n v._o 18_o 19_o moreover_o that_o it_o be_v also_o pray_v what_o he_o understand_v not_o be_v evident_a 1._o because_o pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n be_v oppose_v to_o it_o 2._o because_o the_o mind_n of_o he_o who_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n be_v unfruitful_a v._o 14._o 3._o 13._o v._o 13._o because_o he_o be_v bid_v to_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v interpret_v if_o then_o dissenter_n desire_v thus_o to_o pray_v let_v they_o do_v it_o let_v we_o hear_v they_o pray_v in_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o when_o they_o do_v so_o they_o will_v only_o pray_v after_o the_o roman_a manner_n disapprove_v of_o by_o st_n paul_n who_o command_v such_o person_n to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n vers_fw-la 28._o 3_o when_o this_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v exercise_v the_o apostle_n plain_o say_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n i._n e._n with_o word_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o other_o than_o to_o pray_v with_o this_o spiritual_a gift_n 19.28_o v._o 19.28_o where_o there_o be_v no_o interpreter_n and_o in_o that_o case_n command_v they_o who_o enjoin_v this_o gift_n to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n and_o hence_o it_o follow_v avoidable_a that_o in_o some_o case_n it_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o even_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o edification_n that_o they_o shall_v stint_v this_o gift_n if_o therefore_o the_o immediate_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v be_v stint_v in_o the_o church_n much_o more_o the_o gift_n of_o elocution_n moreover_o these_o gift_n be_v to_o be_v stint_v by_o a_o revelation_n make_v to_o another_o person_n vers_fw-la 30_o by_o subjection_n to_o the_o prophet_n vers_fw-la 32._o by_o the_o rule_n of_o order_n vers_n 33_o 40._o and_o they_o be_v to_o give_v place_n to_o charity_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n vers_fw-la 1_o 4_o 12._o if_o therefore_o charity_n edification_n order_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o these_o gift_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n much_o more_o shall_v charity_n the_o peace_n the_o union_n the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n prevail_v to_o cut_v off_o our_o pretence_n to_o the_o exercise_v of_o this_o mean_a of_o all_o gift_n if_o bless_a paul_n so_o undervalue_v that_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o immediate_a assistance_n that_o he_o prefer_v edify_v the_o church_n a_o thousand_o degree_n beyond_o it_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v have_v prefer_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n before_o that_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o man_n usual_o learn_v and_o do_v obtain_v to_o by_o the_o help_n of_o dr._n wilkins_n discourse_n upon_o the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n now_o sure_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o concern_v towards_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n to_o obey_v superior_n to_o preserve_v peace_n order_n union_n in_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v to_o consent_v
he_o against_o vainglorious_a and_o pharisaical_a address_n against_o prayer_n use_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o not_o put_v up_o in_o faith_n or_o put_v up_o in_o wrath_n against_o the_o prayer_n of_o he_o who_o lift_v not_o up_o pure_a hand_n or_o who_o continue_v in_o his_o sin_n but_o the_o whole_a scripture_n afford_v we_o not_o one_o caution_n against_o form_n of_o prayer_n either_o in_o public_a or_o in_o private_a and_o therefore_o we_o may_v rational_o suppose_v that_o they_o be_v not_o displease_v to_o he_o or_o unacceptable_a at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n argum._n 2_o moreover_o our_o bless_a lord_n have_v both_o command_v and_o approve_v a_o form_n of_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o it_o unquestionable_o must_v be_v lawful_a his_o command_n to_o use_v a_o form_n be_v evident_a 1._o from_o those_o positive_a word_n 11.2_o luke_n 11.2_o when_o you_o pray_v say_v our_o father_n etc._n etc._n and_o though_o st_n matthew_n vary_v the_o word_n of_o the_o command_n inform_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pray_v so_o yet_o may_v that_o please_v be_v very_o well_o consistent_a with_o the_o other_o and_o may_v import_v that_o those_o word_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o our_o prayer_n for_o in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o aaronical_a benediction_n the_o command_n run_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o this_o wise_a shall_v you_o bless_v numb_a 6.23_o whereas_o the_o blessing_n be_v pronounce_v in_o the_o very_a form_n of_o word_n prescribe_v there_o and_o when_o god_n put_v the_o word_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o balaam_n which_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v he_o say_v unto_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o prophet_n 23.5_o numb_a 23.5_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n thus_o shall_v you_o say_v unto_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n always_o import_v these_o word_n shall_v you_o say_v or_o the_o lord_n say_v 2._o the_o request_n of_o christ_n disciple_n be_v that_o he_o will_v teach_v they_o to_o pray_v as_o john_n have_v teach_v his_o disciple_n 6.9_o vid._n leight_n in_o matt._n 6.9_o now_o it_o be_v ordinary_a for_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n to_o compose_v form_n of_o prayer_n for_o their_o scholar_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o st_n john_n do_v so_o and_o consequent_o that_o our_o lord_n do_v so_o for_o his_o disciple_n and_o three_o this_o be_v far_a evident_a from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n they_o be_v not_o direct_v to_o man_n but_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v pray_v to_o your_o father_n in_o heaven_n that_o his_o name_n may_v be_v hallow_v but_o our_o father_n hallow_v be_v thy_o name_n and_o as_o such_o do_v the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n receive_v and_o use_v it_o christ_n say_v tertullian_n 1._o de_fw-fr orat._n c._n 1._o novam_fw-la orandi_fw-la formulam_fw-la determinavit_fw-la appoint_v a_o new_a form_n of_o prayer_n and_o this_o we_o christian_n do_v begin_v with_o in_o the_o apostolic_a constitution_n it_o be_v require_v to_o be_v use_v thrice_o a_o day_n and_o austin_n say_v 5._o l._n 7._o c._n 25._o ep._n 59_o ad_fw-la paul_n qu._n 5._o that_o almost_o the_o whole_a church_n conclude_v the_o communion_n service_n with_o it_o so_o that_o if_o our_o dissenter_n be_v not_o man_n of_o great_a ability_n than_o the_o apostle_n be_v at_o least_o before_o christ_n resurrection_n and_o than_o the_o great_a worthy_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o resurrection_n they_o can_v look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n below_o they_o to_o observe_v this_o form_n of_o prayer_n again_o our_o lord_n approve_v of_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n by_o his_o use_v the_o hymn_n call_v the_o hallel_n with_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o passover_n 26.30_o matt._n 26.30_o by_o his_o presence_n at_o the_o form_n use_v in_o the_o jewish_a service_n 44._o v._o 44._o and_o by_o his_o thrice_o repeat_v the_o same_o word_n even_o when_o he_o use_v the_o great_a fervency_n in_o prayer_n now_o hence_o do_v natural_o flow_v such_o corollary_n as_o evident_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o dissenter_n against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o form_n as_o v._o g._n 1._o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o such_o form_n can_v be_v unlawful_a worship_n forbid_v by_o the_o second_o commandment_n unless_o our_o lord_n do_v both_o prescribe_v and_o by_o his_o practice_n do_v approve_v unlawful_a worship_n 2._o hence_o it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o use_n of_o a_o form_n can_v be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o our_o devotion_n attention_n fervency_n in_o prayer_n unless_o our_o lord_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v prescribe_v that_o which_o be_v thus_o prejudicial_a to_o his_o service_n 3._o hence_o it_o will_v also_o follow_v that_o the_o use_n of_o a_o form_n can_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o use_v our_o own_o gift_n for_o have_v our_o lord_n intend_v it_o to_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o use_v their_o own_o ability_n in_o public_a prayer_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o form_n sure_o he_o himself_o will_v not_o have_v give_v they_o such_o a_o form_n to_o be_v use_v in_o their_o public_a address_n to_o god_n 141._o de_fw-fr orat._n dom._n p._n 141._o wherein_o say_v cyprian_n we_o say_v our_o father_n because_o publica_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o communis_fw-la oratio_fw-la it_o be_v our_o common_a prayer_n 4._o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o pray_v by_o a_o form_n be_v well_o consistent_a with_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n for_o otherwise_o our_o use_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n will_v be_v repugnant_a to_o prayer_n by_o the_o spirit_n moreover_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o christ_n himself_o and_o his_o disciple_n pray_v as_o i_o have_v show_v by_o form_n and_o yet_o dare_v any_o say_v they_o pray_v not_o by_o the_o spirit_n yea_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o three_o century_n and_o the_o devout_a person_n of_o all_o the_o follow_a age_n have_v ever_o use_v form_n in_o public_a and_o dare_v we_o say_v that_o none_o of_o all_o these_o church_n or_o person_n ever_o pray_v in_o public_a by_o the_o spirit_n yea_o do_v not_o france_n geneva_n holland_n and_o almost_o all_o reform_a church_n pray_v by_o form_n and_o when_o the_o minister_n conceive_v a_o prayer_n be_v not_o that_o prayer_n a_o form_n unto_o the_o people_n who_o be_v confine_v to_o pray_v according_a to_o the_o word_n he_o utter_v as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o word_n prescribe_v by_o the_o common_a prayer_n and_o yet_o dare_v any_o one_o affirm_v that_o all_o these_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n argum._n 3_o but_o three_o form_n of_o prayer_n have_v constant_o be_v use_v even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o those_o who_o plead_v against_o they_o throughout_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o three_o century_n that_o be_v above_o 1300_o year_n and_o be_v retain_v and_o approve_v by_o almost_o all_o reform_a church_n and_o therefore_o to_o condemn_v they_o as_o unlawful_a forbid_v by_o the_o second_o commandment_n or_o by_o plain_a precept_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o impediment_n to_o attention_n and_o fervency_n in_o prayer_n and_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o gift_n vouchsafe_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o the_o work_n and_o last_o as_o false_a and_o unacceptable_a worship_n be_v to_o cast_v all_o these_o reproach_n on_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o long_a time_n at_o least_o and_o to_o charge_v all_o her_o eminent_a and_o pious_a clergy_n as_o person_n guilty_a through_o their_o whole_a life_n of_o tender_v to_o god_n a_o false_a forbid_a worship_n and_o be_v always_o guilty_a in_o their_o public_a service_n of_o he_o of_o all_o the_o crime_n foremention_v which_o d._n nam_fw-la hoc_fw-la quin_fw-la ita_fw-la faciendum_fw-la sit_fw-la disputare_fw-la insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la est_fw-la ep._n 118._o p._n 558._o d._n as_o st_n austin_n true_o say_v be_v such_o a_o charge_n as_o will_v pronounce_v the_o author_n of_o it_o guilty_a of_o the_o most_o insolent_a madness_n the_o confession_n of_o dissenter_n to_o this_o effect_n may_v be_v see_v in_o smectymnuus_n 49._o smectymnuus_n answ_n to_o the_o remonstr_n p._n 7._o p._n 11._o thes_n salm._n part_n 3._o loc_fw-la come_v 47._o n._n 49._o and_o the_o grand_a debate_n and_o the_o assertion_n of_o capellus_n that_o the_o use_n of_o public_a form_n obtain_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o above_o 1300_o year_n will_v be_v make_v good_a from_o these_o consideration_n 1._o that_o even_o pliny_n 〈◊〉_d †_o epist_n l._n 10._o ep_n 97._o apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 30._o p._n 281._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v inform_v we_o that_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n do_v sing_v a_o hymn_n to_o christ_n as_o god_n that_o dionysius_n
of_o alexandria_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o hymn_n use_v by_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n now_o these_o be_v form_n of_o prayer_n or_o praise_n 152._o de_fw-fr orat._n dom._n p._n 152._o that_o cyprian_n do_v sufficient_o intimate_v the_o use_n of_o some_o form_n in_o the_o carthaginian_a church_n by_o describe_v the_o entrance_n or_o begin_v thereof_o say_v sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la lift_v up_o your_o heart_n and_o the_o people_n answer_v habemus_fw-la ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la we_o lift_v they_o up_o unto_o the_o lord_n that_o eusebius_n inform_v we_o concern_v constantine_n that_o he_o will_v take_v book_n in_o his_o hand_n for_o the_o express_v with_o his_o court_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 17._o de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constant_n l._n 4._o c._n 17._o the_o appoint_a prayer_n and_o that_o he_o by_o so_o do_v order_v his_o court_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n decree_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o the_o very_a same_o service_n of_o prayer_n morning_n and_o evening_n i._n e._n that_o there_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o morning_n service_n 18._o can._n 18._o and_o the_o same_o evening_n service_n continual_o and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o council_n have_v a_o particular_a respect_n to_o form_n of_o prayer_n then_o in_o use_n in_o the_o next_o canon_n 19_o can._n 19_o it_o give_v a_o account_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o order_n of_o that_o service_n viz._n that_o after_o the_o sermon_n or_o homily_n they_o have_v first_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la than_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o penitent_n than_o three_o prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o this_o canon_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o code_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v cite_v confirm_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n a._n d._n 451._o 1._o can._n 1._o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v then_o so_o well_o know_v 59_o l._n 2._o cap._n 59_o that_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v represent_v as_o say_v the_o three_o prayer_n stand_v every_o lord_n day_n without_o recite_v what_o they_o be_v that_o when_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 262._o supra_fw-la euseb_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la take_v away_o the_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n which_o have_v be_v use_v to_o be_v sing_v in_o the_o church_n pretend_v they_o be_v new_a and_o make_v by_o man_n of_o late_a date_n by_o a_o numerous_a council_n call_v at_o antioch_n he_o be_v censure_v for_o it_o and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n last_o that_o whereas_o the_o constitution_n apostolical_a be_v first_o compose_v say_v our_o incomparable_o learned_a bishop_n pearson_n from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 62._o vindic._n ignat._n p._n 60_o 61_o 62._o or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o instruction_n order_n and_o constitution_n make_v by_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n much_o change_v indeed_o and_o interpolate_v in_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o book_n of_o those_o constitution_n we_o find_v form_n of_o prayer_n under_o their_o name_n for_o all_o church_n office_n for_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la the_o baptise_a the_o penitent_n the_o faithful_a the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o that_o unless_o this_o whole_a eight_o book_n be_v whole_o spurious_a and_o not_o only_o interpolate_v 7._o haer._n 45._o n._n 5.11_o 12.80_o n._n 7._o we_o must_v have_v evidence_n of_o form_n of_o prayer_n like_o we_o still_o use_v in_o the_o church_n not_o only_o from_o the_o four_o century_n when_o epiphanius_n cite_v thess_n constitution_n but_o even_o from_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o haply_o these_o be_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o much_o speak_v of_o and_o since_o so_o much_o increase_v §_o 8_o moreover_o to_o convince_v man_n from_o plain_a evidence_n of_o reason_n in_o this_o matter_n it_o only_o will_v be_v needful_a to_o advertise_v they_o 1._o that_o all_o premeditate_a prayer_n in_o which_o we_o do_v consider_v what_o to_o say_v and_o in_o what_o word_n we_o shall_v express_v our_o thought_n to_o god_n be_v in_o effect_n a_o stint_a prayer_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o write_n or_o the_o print_n but_o the_o order_n and_o compose_v of_o the_o word_n which_o make_v the_o prayer_n a_o form_n if_o therefore_o this_o be_v be_v do_v before_o we_o pray_v our_o prayer_n must_v be_v a_o form_n 2._o this_o be_v so_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n can_v be_v only_o this_o whether_o in_o our_o address_n to_o the_o most_o immense_a infinite_a eternal_a god_n we_o shall_v use_v consideration_n or_o pray_v and_o praise_v he_o inconsiderate_o whether_o we_o shall_v deliberate_v and_o take_v good_a heed_n that_o we_o offend_v not_o with_o our_o tongue_n or_o speak_v without_o deliberation_n whatsoever_o come_v first_o into_o our_o thought_n 14.2_o hos_fw-la 14.2_o whether_o we_o shall_v take_v unto_o ourselves_o word_n and_o speak_v unto_o he_o as_o the_o prophet_n hoseah_n do_v advise_v or_o shall_v present_v ourselves_o before_o he_o not_o know_v what_o to_o say_v and_o for_o our_o better_a satisfaction_n the_o wise_a man_n do_v advise_v we_o 5.2_o eccles_n 5.2_o not_o to_o be_v rash_a with_o our_o mouth_n nor_o let_v our_o heart_n be_v hasty_a to_o utter_v any_o thing_n before_o god_n and_o that_o for_o a_o eternal_a reason_n viz._n because_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o we_o be_v on_o earth_n now_o what_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v hasty_a to_o offer_v any_o thing_n before_o god_n if_o he_o be_v not_o who_o pray_v ex_fw-la tempore_fw-la or_o who_o speak_v rash_o with_o his_o mouth_n if_o he_o do_v not_o who_o speak_v without_o deliberation_n or_o consideration_n what_o to_o say_v second_o our_o own_o experience_n will_v inform_v we_o how_o natural_a it_o be_v to_o all_o mankind_n to_o take_v such_o good_a advice_n before_o hand_n when_o they_o present_v their_o thanks_o or_o their_o petition_n to_o a_o earthly_a prince_n as_o may_v secure_v they_o that_o they_o deliver_v their_o request_n in_o grave_n and_o decent_a form_n of_o word_n and_o can_v it_o therefore_o stand_v with_o the_o reverence_n we_o owe_v to_o the_o most_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o use_v to_o he_o what_o we_o dare_v not_o present_a unto_o a_o prince_n or_o prudent_a governor_n in_o such_o a_o serious_a matter_n as_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o prayer_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n by_o which_o god_n plead_v against_o the_o lame_a and_o the_o imperfect_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o people_n say_v if_o you_o offer_v the_o blind_a for_o sacrifice_n be_v it_o not_o evil_a and_o if_o you_o offer_v the_o lame_a and_o sick_a be_v it_o not_o evil_a 1.8_o mal._n 1.8_o offer_v it_o now_o unto_o thy_o governor_n will_v he_o be_v please_v with_o thou_o or_o accept_v thy_o person_n imply_v that_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n must_v be_v serve_v with_o the_o best_a sacrifice_n we_o can_v tender_v to_o he_o and_o therefore_o with_o the_o best_a prayer_n and_o praise_n which_o we_o can_v conceive_v and_o that_o what_o earthly_a prince_n may_v slight_v as_o beneath_o they_o must_v be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o king_n of_o king_n moreover_o if_o we_o compare_v together_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o prayer_n by_o form_n and_o by_o extemporary_a effusion_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o former_a to_o be_v more_o expedient_a in_o our_o public_a worship_n for_o several_a momentous_a reason_n concern_v both_o ourselves_o and_o other_o for_o 1._o the_o apostle_n do_v require_v we_o 14.15_o 1_o cor._n 14.15_o and_o even_o reason_n do_v inform_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n and_o that_o we_o can_v say_v amen_o to_o that_o prayer_n we_o understand_v not_o now_o what_o assurance_n can_v the_o people_n have_v in_o join_v with_o a_o minister_n who_o pray_v ex_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o oft_o in_o mystical_a expression_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o he_o shall_v understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n whereas_o if_o constant_a liturgy_n be_v use_v we_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v by_o our_o own_o read_n or_o by_o the_o information_n of_o other_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o 2_o the_o apostle_n intimate_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o hearer_n to_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o prayer_n offer_v up_o in_o public_a and_o indeed_o otherwise_o we_o can_v well_o be_v say_v to_o join_v with_o the_o minister_n in_o prayer_n now_o this_o we_o can_v do_v sincere_o unless_o we_o do_v approve_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o prayer_n now_o what_o assurance_n can_v the_o people_n have_v in_o that_o great_a difference_n of_o
say_v 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom._n 36._o in_o 1_o ep._n ad_fw-la cor._n p._n 487._o l._n 3.24_o 484._o l._n 5._o that_o one_o may_v be_v say_v to_o sing_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o all_o sing_v after_o he_o so_o that_o the_o voice_n come_v as_o it_o be_v from_o one_o mouth_n all_o which_o testimony_n sufficient_o convince_v we_o that_o what_o we_o do_v in_o this_o particular_a be_v suitable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n in_o ancient_a time_n 3._o this_o custom_n do_v commend_v itself_o unto_o we_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o benefit_n which_o may_v accrue_v unto_o we_o by_o it_o for_o 1._o we_o hereby_o show_v that_o symphony_n which_o christ_n require_v in_o our_o prayer_n 18.19_o matt._n 18.19_o that_o they_o may_v be_v prevail_v and_o that_o we_o full_o do_v agree_v to_o the_o petition_n that_o be_v make_v in_o our_o behalf_n 15.6_o rom._n 15.6_o and_o praise_n god_n with_o the_o minister_n not_o only_o with_o one_o heart_n but_o with_o one_o mouth_n 2._o our_o attention_n be_v hereby_o both_o quicken_v and_o engage_v which_o may_v be_v apt_a to_o stray_v the_o more_o if_o we_o shall_v bear_v no_o part_n in_o the_o whole_a service_n for_o when_o the_o people_n bear_v a_o share_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o duty_n 177._o comber_n comp._n part_n 1._o p._n 177._o they_o must_v expect_v before_o it_o come_v that_o they_o may_v be_v ready_a when_o it_o be_v come_v they_o must_v observe_v that_o they_o may_v be_v right_a and_o after_o take_v heed_n to_o prepare_v against_o the_o next_o answer_n they_o be_v to_o give_v how_o pious_a therefore_o and_o prudent_a be_v this_o order_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o to_o intermix_v the_o people_n duty_n that_o they_o may_v be_v always_o exercise_v in_o it_o or_o prepare_v for_o it_o and_o never_o have_v leisure_n to_o entertain_v those_o vain_a thought_n which_o will_v set_v upon_o we_o especial_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v object_n 3_o our_o saviour_n reprehend_v the_o vain_a repetition_n of_o the_o heathen_n in_o these_o word_n when_o you_o pray_v §_o 3_o use_v not_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o heathen_n do_v for_o they_o think_v to_o be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_n be_v not_o you_o therefore_o like_a unto_o they_o matt._n 6.7_o 8._o now_o of_o these_o vain_a repetition_n the_o common_a prayer_n seem_v to_o be_v guilty_a say_v dissenter_n 1._o in_o the_o frequent_a use_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n that_o be_v there_o appoint_v to_o be_v use_v four_o time_n in_o the_o morning_n service_n viz._n after_o the_o absolution_n the_o creed_n the_o litany_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o communion_n service_n 2._o in_o those_o word_n use_v in_o the_o close_a of_o the_o litany_n o_o christ_n hear_v we_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o christ_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o in_o the_o frequent_a repetition_n of_o the_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la to_o this_o objection_n i_o answer_v answ_n 1_o that_o our_o saviour_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o reprehend_v such_o repetition_n as_o these_o be_v proceed_v from_o a_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n 1._o because_o he_o himself_o use_v the_o like_a expression_n when_o he_o pray_v most_o fervent_o for_o the_o evangelist_n st._n luke_n inform_v we_o that_o be_v in_o a_o agony_n he_o pray_v more_o earnest_o luk._n 22.44_o and_o matthew_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o he_o repeat_v thrice_o the_o same_o petition_n for_o he_o say_v matthew_z pray_v the_o three_o time_n say_v the_o same_o word_n chap._n 26._o vers_fw-la 44._o this_o therefore_o can_v be_v vain_a repetition_n unless_o our_o lord_n himself_o do_v practice_v it_o in_o contradiction_n to_o his_o own_o command_n moreover_o our_o saviour_n sing_v a_o hymn_n with_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a as_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v at_o their_o paschal_n supper_n 84._o censent_fw-la viri_fw-la eruditi_fw-la cantato_n à_fw-la christo_fw-la hymnos_fw-la qui_fw-la paschate_o cani_fw-la solerent_fw-la à_fw-la psal_n 113._o ad_fw-la psal_n 118._o inclusiué_fw-fr synopsi_fw-la cum_fw-la in_o plurali_fw-la dicitur_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d inde_fw-la colligi_fw-la ipsos_fw-la una_fw-la hymnum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la notum_fw-la cecinisse_fw-la &_o quomodo_fw-la christo_fw-la accinere_fw-la potuissent_fw-la discipuli_fw-la si_fw-la ille_fw-la novum_fw-la &_o insuetum_fw-la hymnum_fw-la cecinisset_fw-la buxt_n de_fw-fr coen_n dom._n §._o 84._o which_o hymn_n begin_v at_o psal_n 113._o and_o end_v with_o the_o 118_o psalm_n this_o say_v the_o learned_a buxtorf_n be_v a_o very_a ancient_a custom_n mention_v in_o the_o jewish_a talmud_n and_o there_o delare_v to_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o prophet_n now_o that_o our_o saviour_n sing_v this_o very_a hymn_n be_v high_o probable_a say_v the_o learned_a because_o he_o do_v in_o other_o thing_n comply_v with_o the_o rite_n use_v by_o the_o jew_n in_o celebrate_v of_o the_o paschal_n supper_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v well_o suppose_v to_o have_v do_v so_o also_o in_o this_o case_n now_o in_o this_o hymn_n psal_n 118._o we_o find_v the_o same_o word_n in_o the_o four_o first_o verse_n viz._n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o parallel_n to_o those_o in_o the_o end_n of_o our_o litany_n and_o in_o the_o last_o verse_n we_o find_v the_o same_o word_n again_o and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a psalm_n be_v full_a of_o repetition_n as_o you_o may_v see_v v._o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o as_o also_o psal_n 115.9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o israel_n afford_v we_o many_o like_a example_n so_o psal_n 119._o we_o have_v this_o prayer_n teach_v i_o thy_o statute_n v._o 26_o 64_o 68_o 124_o 135._o teach_v i_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o statute_n v._o 33._o teach_v i_o thy_o judgement_n v._o 108._o o_o that_o my_o way_n be_v direct_v to_o keep_v thy_o statute_n v._o 5._o make_v i_o to_o go_v in_o the_o path_n of_o thy_o commandment_n v._o 35._o let_v my_o heart_n be_v sound_a in_o thy_o statute_n v._o 80._o so_o that_o upon_o the_o matter_n we_o find_v he_o ten_o time_n repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n six_o time_n in_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v quicken_v he_o according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o love_a kindness_n viz._n v._n 37._o 88_o 107._o 149._o 156._o 159._o and_o he_o profess_v his_o love_n of_o and_o delight_n in_o god_n law_n in_o the_o same_o psalm_n as_o oft_o as_o there_o be_v letter_n in_o the_o alphabet_n in_o psalm_n 42_o 43._o which_o be_v assure_o twin_v their_o matter_n be_v alike_o and_o they_o have_v no_o title_n to_o distinguish_v they_o we_o find_v the_o same_o thing_n thrice_o repeat_v viz._n why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n etc._n etc._n psal_n 42.5_o 11.43.5_o in_o psal_n 107._o we_o find_v this_o prayer_n four_o time_n repeat_v oh_o that_o man_n will_v therefore_o praise_v the_o lord_n for_o his_o goodness_n viz._n v._n 8_o 15_o 21_o 31._o and_o last_o in_o psalm_n 136._o we_o find_v these_o word_n o_o give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o lord_n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o four_o time_n repeat_v and_o that_o clause_n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o twenty_o six_o time_n to_o these_o example_n it_o be_v answer_v 85._o reply_n presb._n commission_n p._n 85._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o what_o be_v unusual_a and_o what_o be_v our_o daily_a course_n of_o worship_n answer_n be_v it_o so_o nevertheless_o once_o usage_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o the_o thing_n can_v be_v unlawful_a or_o forbid_v by_o the_o text_n foremention_v since_o negative_a precept_n always_o do_v oblige_v and_o so_o that_o which_o they_o forbid_v can_v never_o be_v do_v without_o sin_n 2._o the_o assembly_n annotation_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o of_o these_o be_v common_a constant_a form_n as_o well_o for_o ordinary_a daily_a praise_n in_o divine_a service_n as_o for_o extraordinary_a occasion_n and_o this_o appear_v from_o 1_o chron._n 16.34_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o heman_n and_o jeduthun_n and_o other_o man_n be_v choose_v to_o give_v thanks_o to_o the_o lord_n because_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o so_o also_o 2_o chron._n 5.13_o they_o praise_v the_o lord_n say_v psalm_n 136._o for_o he_o be_v good_a for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o so_o ezr._n 3.1_o they_o sing_v together_o in_o course_n praise_v and_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n because_o he_o be_v good_a for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o jer._n 33.11_o be_v mention_n make_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v say_v praise_n you_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o lord_n be_v good_a for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o from_o all_o which_o place_n it_o seem_v evident_a that_o psalm_n 136._o as_o well_o as_o
which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o peace_n and_o concord_n can_v not_o obtain_v among_o those_o nation_n where_o they_o dwell_v that_o precept_n therefore_o do_v in_o effect_n oblige_v we_o to_o put_v up_o that_o prayer_n which_o our_o dissenter_n do_v except_v against_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o so_o long_o as_o satan_n and_o evil_a man_n do_v sow_v the_o seed_n of_o discord_n this_o be_v a_o happiness_n scarce_o to_o be_v expect_v yet_o because_o it_o be_v a_o happiness_n to_o be_v wish_v for_o and_o because_o god_n alone_o be_v able_a to_o procure_v it_o we_o ought_v to_o beg_v it_o of_o he_o in_o this_o distract_a state_n of_o christendom_n we_o have_v but_o slender_a expectation_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v a_o city_n whole_o at_o unity_n within_o herself_o but_o yet_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v pray_v with_o our_o dear_a lord_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o john_n 17.11_o 21._o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o v._o 23._o and_o with_o bless_a paul_n that_o they_o may_v be_v like_o mind_a one_o towards_o another_o according_a to_o christ_n jesus_n 15.6_o rom._n 15.6_o that_o they_o may_v with_o one_o mind_n and_o mouth_n glorify_v god_n as_o to_o the_o second_o instance_n of_o the_o good-friday_n collect_v i_o answer_v answ_n 2_o that_o it_o do_v perfect_o accord_v with_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n 140._o see_v comber_n p._n 139_o 140._o which_o put_v up_o their_o petition_n for_o those_o that_o be_v without_o and_o be_v deceive_v that_o god_n will_v convert_v they_o say_v the_o liturgy_n of_o clemens_n 104._o sacram._n p._n 104._o for_o pagan_n and_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v s._n ambrose_n and_o gregory_n 30._o gregory_n praesules_fw-la tota_fw-la secum_fw-la congemiscente_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la postulant_fw-la &_o precantur_fw-la ut_fw-la infidelibus_fw-la donetur_fw-la fides_fw-la ut_fw-la idololatrae_fw-la ab_fw-la impietatis_fw-la suae_fw-la liberentur_fw-la erroribus_fw-la ut_fw-la judaeis_n ablato_fw-la cordis_fw-la velamine_fw-la lux_fw-la veritatis_fw-la appareat_fw-la ut_fw-la haeretici_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la perceptione_n resipiscant_fw-la ut_fw-la schismatici_fw-la spiritum_fw-la redivivae_fw-la charitatis_fw-la accipiant_fw-la gennad_n de_fw-fr dogmat_fw-la eccles_n c._n 30._o for_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n so_o that_o to_o quarrel_v with_o this_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v to_o reproach_v the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n second_o since_o scripture_n clear_o say_v that_o blindness_n in_o part_n be_v happen_v to_o israel_n until_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v come_v in_o and_o so_o all_o israel_n shall_v be_v save_v rom._n 11.25_o 26._o and_o that_o god_n have_v conclude_v they_o all_o in_o unbelief_n that_o he_o may_v have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o v._o 32._o see_v the_o psalmist_n pray_v 67.2_o psal_n 67.2_o that_o god_n way_n may_v be_v know_v upon_o earth_n his_o save_a health_n among_o all_o nation_n see_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n do_v foretell_v that_o all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n isai_n 52.10_o and_o the_o divine_a that_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n rev._n 11.15_o since_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o give_v unto_o his_o son_n the_o heathen_a for_o his_o inheritance_n 2.8_o psal_n 2.8_o and_o the_o outmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n and_o send_v this_o great_a diffusive_a light_n into_o the_o world_n to_o enlighten_v every_o one_o that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n john_n 1.9_o even_o those_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n 1.79_o luke_n 1.79_o and_o to_o guide_v their_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n i_o say_v see_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o i_o know_v not_o how_o we_o can_v scruple_n the_o pray_v for_o all_o jew_n turk_n infidel_n without_o dispute_v the_o veracity_n of_o these_o divine_a prediction_n or_o the_o propriety_n of_o these_o prayer_n and_o yet_o if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o a_o distinction_n it_o be_v wonderful_a that_o they_o who_o do_v relieve_v themselves_o when_o press_v hard_o with_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o well_o know_a distinction_n of_o singula_fw-la generum_fw-la and_o genera_fw-la singulorum_fw-la will_v not_o allow_v the_o church_n the_o benefit_n of_o that_o distinction_n and_o suffer_v she_o to_o mean_v in_o this_o most_o charitable_a collect_v all_o the_o tribe_n or_o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o jew_n all_o sort_n of_o infidel_n all_o nation_n profess_v themselves_o servant_n of_o the_o great_a prophet_n mahomet_n all_o sect_n of_o heretic_n and_o then_o their_o little_a scruple_n will_v have_v no_o shadow_n of_o appearance_n leave_v to_o the_o three_o scruple_n the_o prayer_n continue_v in_o the_o litany_n that_o it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o man_n answ_n 3_o i_o answer_v as_o before_o first_o 152._o l._n 4._o p._n 152._o that_o this_o also_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o pax_n cunctis_fw-la &_o venia_fw-la postulatur_fw-la say_v arnobius_n who_o litany_n run_v thus_o pour_v out_o the_o riches_n of_o thy_o mercy_n upon_o all_o man_n and_o woman_n so_o the_o liturgy_n of_o st._n basil_n 336._o quam_fw-la legem_fw-la supplicationis_fw-la sc_fw-la quâ_fw-la preces_fw-la fiunt_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la ita_fw-la omnium_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la fidelium_fw-la devotio_fw-la concorditer_fw-la tenet_fw-la ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la pars_fw-la mundi_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la orationes_fw-la non_fw-la celebrentur_fw-la à_fw-la populis_fw-la christianis_fw-la de_fw-la vocat_fw-la gent._n l._n 1._o c._n 12._o p._n 798._o siquidem_fw-la apostolus_fw-la cujus_fw-la ista_fw-la sententia_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la homines_fw-la salui_fw-la fiant_fw-la deum_fw-la velle_fw-la sollicitissimè_fw-la praecepti_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la piissimè_fw-la custoditur_fw-la ut_fw-la deo_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la supplicetur_fw-la idem_fw-la ad_fw-la object_n vincent_n ob._n 2._o p._n 336._o chrysostome_n st._n james_n this_o rule_n of_o supplication_n say_v prosper_n the_o devotion_n of_o all_o priest_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a do_v so_o unanimous_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o such_o prayer_n be_v not_o celebrate_v by_o christian_a people_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v be_v scruple_v or_o pronounce_v disagreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n without_o accuse_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o crime_n second_o see_v the_o royal_a psalmist_n say_v that_o god_n be_v good_a to_o every_o man_n and_o that_o his_o tender_a mercy_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n psal_n 145.9_o and_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n 1_o tim._n 4.10_o i_o rather_o think_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v very_o sit_v that_o prayer_n intercession_n 2.1_o 1_o tim._n 2.1_o and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n and_o that_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o exception_n of_o dissenter_n be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v v._o 3_o 4._o moreover_o must_v not_o all_o faithful_a pastor_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v their_o labour_n and_o render_v they_o successful_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o they_o that_o hear_v they_o and_o if_o this_o may_v be_v do_v acceptable_o why_o may_v they_o not_o then_o pray_v thus_o for_o all_o the_o member_n of_o other_o congregation_n do_v not_o god_n peremptory_o command_v all_o man_n in_o all_o place_n to_o repent_v act_n 17.30_o and_o may_v we_o not_o then_o pray_v that_o all_o may_v do_v what_o he_o command_v yea_o do_v not_o god_n himself_o thus_o wish_v concern_v they_o who_o carcase_n fall_v in_o the_o wilderness_n through_o unbelief_n o_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o heart_n in_o they_o that_o they_o will_v fear_v i_o and_o keep_v all_o my_o commandment_n always_o that_o it_o may_v be_v well_o with_o they_o and_o their_o child_n for_o ever_o deut._n 5.29_o and_o of_o they_o who_o walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n o_o that_o they_o be_v wise_a that_o they_o will_v consider_v this_o that_o they_o will_v understand_v their_o latter_a end_n deut._n 32.29_o and_o may_v not_o christian_n comply_v with_o the_o example_n of_o their_o god_n and_o wish_v what_o he_o do_v wish_v or_o can_v such_o wish_n be_v contrary_a to_o his_o dispensation_n of_o harden_v obstinate_a and_o stubborn_a sinner_n comber_n dr._n comber_n have_v then_o so_o good_a authority_n so_o great_a example_n and_o so_o excellent_a reason_n for_o this_o universal_a charity_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v move_v at_o the_o trifle_a objection_n of_o those_o man_n who_o scruple_n this_o petition_n because_o it_o will_v not_o suit_v their_o system_n of_o absolute_a election_n and_o reprobation_n and_o
or_o at_o the_o least_o we_o understand_v not_o how_o they_o can_v be_v say_v with_o any_o certainty_n of_o truth_n and_o q_n 1_o what_o say_v they_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o metaphor_n in_o the_o confession_n there_o be_v no_o health_n in_o we_o answer_n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n to_o help_v or_o save_v ourselves_o out_o of_o the_o misery_n which_o by_o our_o sin_n we_o have_v deserve_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o ourselves_o which_o can_v preserve_v we_o from_o perish_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o iniquity_n this_o be_v the_o frequent_a import_n of_o the_o word_n health_n in_o scripture_n so_o psal_n 42.11.43.1_o god_n be_v the_o health_n of_o my_o countenance_n i._n e._n the_o help_n of_o my_o countenance_n psal_n 42.5_o salvation_n be_v far_o from_o the_o wicked_a psal_n 119.155_o n._n transl_n health_n be_v far_o from_o they_o say_v the_o old_a and_o again_o trust_v not_o in_o prince_n or_o in_o any_o son_n of_o man_n for_o there_o be_v no_o help_n in_o they_o psal_n 146.3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v no_o health_n or_o no_o salvation_n in_o they_o say_v the_o seventy_o q_o 2_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n or_o at_o least_o the_o appositeness_n of_o that_o respon_n give_v peace_n in_o our_o time_n o_o lord_n resp_n because_o there_o be_v none_o other_o that_o fight_v for_o we_o but_o only_o thou_o o_o god_n answer_n to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o perspicuous_a answer_n to_o this_o question_n consider_v 1._o 39.8_o vide_fw-la comber_n part_v 1._o p._n 363_o 364._o 1_o chron._n 22.9_o isai_n 39.8_o that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o god_n gracious_a promise_n to_o his_o pious_a servant_n of_o old_a that_o he_o will_v give_v peace_n in_o their_o day_n and_o so_o this_o be_v fit_a matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n 2._o consider_v that_o god_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n style_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o make_v peace_n in_o our_o border_n and_o by_o his_o providence_n preserve_v peace_n among_o nation_n 46.9_o psal_n 46.9_o break_v the_o bow_n and_o knap_v the_o spear_n asunder_o consider_v 3._o that_o this_o god_n be_v our_o only_a sure_a defence_n against_o our_o enemy_n and_o that_o our_o army_n and_o navy_n will_v be_v unsuccessful_a to_o defend_v we_o without_o his_o good_a providence_n or_o to_o procure_v peace_n for_o we_o and_o therefore_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o apply_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o for_o these_o mercy_n conlider_n 4._o that_o the_o end_n of_o all_o just_a war_n be_v peace_n man_n therefore_o sight_v in_o their_o own_o defence_n that_o they_o may_v oblige_v their_o neighbour_n to_o live_v peaceable_o by_o they_o this_o be_v so_o what_o be_v more_o proper_a than_o this_o prayer_n give_v peace_n in_o our_o time_n o_o lord_n thou_o god_n of_o peace_n either_o by_o keep_v we_o from_o war_n or_o render_v our_o arm_n so_o happy_a and_o successful_a that_o they_o may_v procure_v we_o a_o last_a peace_n this_o do_v we_o beg_v of_o thou_o because_o there_o be_v none_o other_o who_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o war_n or_o save_v we_o in_o it_o or_o make_v our_o fight_a tend_v unto_o our_o last_a future_a peace_n but_o only_o thou_o o_o lord_n q_o 3_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o metaphor_n lighten_v our_o darkness_n o_o lord_n answ_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o scripture_n phrase_n use_v psal_n 18.28_o job_n 29.3_o import_v our_o desire_n that_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o god_n we_o may_v be_v keep_v in_o a_o joyful_a comfortable_a prosperous_a state_n which_o state_n in_o scripture_n be_v usual_o signify_v by_o the_o word_n light_n be_v preserve_v still_o from_o all_o calamity_n and_o misery_n if_o we_o at_o present_a be_v free_a from_o they_o or_o else_o deliver_v from_o they_o by_o his_o power_n and_o mercy_n if_o we_o labour_v under_o any_o kind_n or_o degree_n of_o they_o and_o the_o ensue_a clause_n be_v but_o a_o explication_n and_o application_n of_o it_o to_o the_o then_o present_a night_n q._n 4_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o your_o prayer_n for_o deliverance_n from_o fornication_n and_o all_o other_o deadly_a sin_n do_v you_o not_o by_o it_o seem_v to_o approve_v that_o popish_a doctrine_n which_o hold_v that_o some_o sin_n in_o their_o nature_n be_v venial_a that_o be_v do_v not_o deserve_v eternal_a death_n answer_n this_o can_v rational_o be_v suspect_v of_o that_o church_n who_o doctrine_n it_o be_v that_o all_o sin_n be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n deadly_a though_o all_o in_o the_o event_n do_v not_o and_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n will_v not_o prove_v deadly_a to_o the_o christian._n for_o that_o new_a covenant_n declare_v god_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o sincere_a obedience_n that_o be_v of_o such_o obedience_n as_o be_v consistent_a with_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o weakness_n and_o that_o such_o sin_n will_v not_o exclude_v we_o from_o god_n favour_n but_o will_v be_v pardon_v upon_o our_o general_a repentance_n and_o our_o desire_n to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o our_o secret_a sin_n the_o import_n therefore_o of_o this_o phrase_n be_v this_o that_o god_n will_v gracious_o deliver_v we_o fromall_a those_o sin_n which_o be_v therefore_o deadly_a 1._o because_o they_o do_v declare_v he_o who_o commit_v they_o to_o be_v unregenerate_a or_o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v declare_v concern_v fornicator_n 5.5_o eph._n 5.5_o for_o no_o fornicator_n have_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v a_o son_n of_o disobedience_n vers_fw-la 6._o he_o be_v yoke_v with_o the_o profane_a heb._n 12.16_o and_o do_v commit_v that_o sin_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o cleave_v to_o christ_n and_o which_o permit_v not_o his_o body_n to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o 2._o 19_o 1_o cor._n 6.16_o 19_o because_o they_o leave_v we_o under_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n so_o that_o whosoever_o die_v without_o particular_a repentance_n for_o and_o reformation_n of_o they_o will_v be_v obnoxious_a to_o eternal_a death_n they_o be_v sin_n for_o which_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n so_o be_v it_o say_v of_o fornication_n coloss_n 3.6_o and_o to_o all_o fornicator_n it_o be_v threaten_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o portion_n in_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n rev._n 21.8_o and_o st_n paul_n plain_o say_v fornicator_n and_o adulterer_n god_n will_v damn_v heb._n 13.4_o and_o 3._o because_o they_o usual_o end_v in_o death_n few_o ever_o escape_v from_o they_o or_o be_v renew_v to_o repentance_n such_o be_v too_o frequent_o the_o fate_n of_o he_o who_o go_v to_o the_o harlot_n house_n for_o none_o that_o go_v to_o her_o house_n say_v solomon_n 2.19_o prov._n 2.19_o return_v again_o or_o take_v hold_v of_o the_o path_n of_o life_n the_o mouth_n of_o a_o strange_a woman_n be_v a_o deep_a pit_n 22.14_o prov._n 22.14_o into_o which_o he_o that_o be_v abhor_v of_o the_o lord_n do_v fall_v now_o these_o sin_n be_v too_o many_o to_o be_v name_v particular_o and_o be_v difficult_a to_o be_v exact_o state_v and_o enumerate_v be_v comprehend_v under_o this_o general_a appellation_n to_o humble_v the_o bold_a committer_n of_o they_o by_o mind_v they_o that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o speedy_o repent_v of_o which_o be_v but_o rare_o do_v they_o will_v end_v in_o their_o damnation_n or_o eternal_a death_n q._n 5_o why_o pray_v you_o for_o deliverance_n from_o sudden_a death_n which_o if_o it_o happen_v to_o the_o prepare_a christian_a seem_v to_o be_v no_o evil_n answer_n though_o some_o 776._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euchol_n p._n 776._o who_o it_o seem_v think_v that_o they_o be_v always_o sit_v to_o die_v do_v inconsiderate_o blame_v this_o petition_n of_o our_o liturgy_n as_o unbecoming_a christian_n and_o thereby_o blame_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o for_o a_o long_a time_n have_v make_v use_n of_o this_o petition_n yet_o i_o suppose_v that_o none_o of_o they_o will_v wish_v or_o if_o they_o well_o consider_v be_v as_o much_o content_v to_o die_v by_o the_o immediate_a sudden_a hand_n of_o god_n as_o to_o have_v time_n to_o recollect_v themselves_o before_o death_n to_o die_v as_o do_v job_n child_n or_o they_o on_o who_o the_o tower_n of_o siloam_n fall_v but_o rather_o will_v conceive_v it_o be_v a_o mercy_n worthy_a of_o their_o thanks_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o such_o a_o death_n and_o that_o 1._o 62._o comber_n part_v 2._o p._n 61_o 62._o because_o this_o sudden_a death_n afford_v no_o time_n to_o settle_v our_o estate_n but_o leave_v our_o temporal_a concern_v entangle_v and_o involve_v our_o relation_n in_o lawsuit_n and_o contest_v 2._o
the_o law_n 23.23_o matt._n 23.23_o viz._n judgement_n and_o mercy_n 12.33_o mark_v 12.33_o that_o to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o be_v more_o than_o all_o burnt-offering_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o to_o pray_v hear_v read_v the_o word_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n to_o fast_o be_v but_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v in_o his_o word_n ordain_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o justice_n equity_n mercy_n love_n peace_n humility_n and_o temperance_n and_o such_o like_a christian_a grace_n and_o therefore_o these_o must_v be_v the_o thing_n in_o which_o god_n be_v concern_v most_o that_o we_o shall_v yield_v obedience_n that_o when_o the_o scripture_n reckon_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n 5.22_o gal._n 5.22_o it_o tell_v we_o they_o be_v love_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n righteousness_n and_o temperance_n not_o prayer_n fast_v hear_v receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n and_o last_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o we_o be_v call_v to_o imitate_v our_o heavenly_a father_n in_o act_n of_o love_n and_o mercy_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n in_o meekness_n and_o humility_n bowel_n of_o mercy_n compassion_n and_o self-denial_n but_o not_o in_o prayer_n and_o fast_v and_o in_o such_o like_a duty_n since_o therefore_o god_n be_v more_o concern_v for_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n than_o for_o his_o outward_a worship_n his_o word_n must_v be_v more_o perfect_a in_o prescribe_v of_o these_o duty_n than_o any_o circumstance_n of_o his_o worship_n if_o then_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o we_o to_o submit_v to_o any_o ceremony_n command_v by_o man_n which_o respect_v his_o worship_n because_o god_n word_n must_v be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n not_o only_o of_o all_o part_n but_o of_o all_o mode_n of_o worship_n it_o must_v be_v more_o unlawful_a to_o submit_v to_o any_o humane_a constitution_n touch_v equity_n and_o justice_n mercy_n and_o compassion_n love_n charity_n and_o peace_n because_o god_n word_n must_v be_v suppose_v in_o these_o more_o weighty_a and_o substantial_a matter_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n more_o perfect_a and_o therefore_o all_o the_o law_n and_o statute_n respect_v matter_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o can_v be_v collect_v from_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n must_v by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v cashier_v as_o vain_a invention_n and_o christian_n must_v stand_v oblige_v to_o refuse_v obedience_n to_o they_o for_o instance_n i_o be_o command_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o public_a but_o whether_o i_o must_v do_v it_o in_o a_o church_n or_o in_o the_o field_n in_o black_a or_o white_a or_o any_o other_o garb_n by_o stint_a word_n or_o by_o expression_n of_o my_o own_o immediate_a invention_n in_o this_o or_o that_o or_o a_o 3d_o posture_n be_v not_o express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n if_o therefore_o in_o these_o case_n i_o must_v not_o yield_v obedience_n to_o any_o power_n that_o will_v command_v i_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o white_a to_o pray_v in_o stint_a word_n to_o do_v it_o kneel_v or_o the_o like_a because_o that_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o worship_n have_v not_o determine_v of_o these_o thing_n must_v i_o not_o do_v the_o like_a in_o other_o case_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n and_o because_o scripture_n have_v command_v that_o i_o shall_v be_v charitable_a and_o give_v alm_n but_o have_v not_o say_v what_o portion_n i_o shall_v give_v nor_o when_o nor_o in_o what_o place_n or_o to_o what_o person_n nor_o in_o what_o manner_n whether_o by_o myself_o or_o by_o the_o overseer_n of_o the_o poor_a be_o i_o not_o bind_v as_o much_o to_o show_v my_o disobedience_n to_o those_o law_n which_o rate_v i_o to_o the_o poor_a and_o which_o give_v power_n to_o officer_n to_o strain_v on_o my_o refusal_n to_o pay_v that_o rate_n if_o i_o must_v not_o join_v with_o a_o assembly_n that_o do_v use_v a_o stint_a form_n of_o word_n that_o rise_v up_o at_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o with_o a_o pastor_n that_o do_v officiate_v in_o white_a because_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o command_v in_o the_o perfect_a rule_n of_o worship_n how_o dare_v i_o to_o commence_v a_o suit_n of_o law_n to_o arrest_v a_o person_n for_o a_o debt_n or_o to_o indite_v he_o for_o a_o trespass_n without_o scripture_n warrant_v these_o thing_n be_v no_o where_o command_v in_o that_o perfect_a rule_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n the_o scripture_n have_v say_v there_o be_v utter_o a_o fault_n among_o you_o that_o you_o go_v to_o law_n one_o with_o another_o 5.40_o 1_o cor._n 6.7_o luk._n 6.35_o matt._n 5.40_o lend_v hope_v for_o nothing_o again_o if_o any_o man_n take_v away_o thy_o cloak_n let_v he_o have_v thy_o coat_n also_o but_o never_o say_v if_o any_o man_n officiate_v in_o white_a or_o by_o a_o form_n of_o word_n do_v not_o join_v with_o he_o be_v it_o not_o matter_n of_o just_a admiration_n that_o they_o who_o never_o scruple_n to_o act_v contrary_a unto_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o former_a case_n shall_v be_v so_o very_o scrupulous_a in_o thing_n no_o where_n forbid_v in_o the_o word_n 3_o this_o dangerous_a opinion_n will_v force_v man_n to_o be_v troublesome_a in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o refuse_v communion_n even_o with_o those_o assembly_n they_o be_v join_v with_o nay_o have_v they_o live_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n or_o any_o other_o age_n of_o christendom_n they_o must_v have_v be_v continual_a separatist_n for_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o can_v they_o have_v find_v a_o precept_n for_o all_o the_o jewish_a practice_n and_o observation_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v in_o the_o forego_n argument_n if_o they_o have_v live_v in_o the_o next_o age_n to_o the_o apostle_n with_o polycarp_n and_o ignatius_n who_o do_v converse_v with_o the_o apostle_n where_o will_v the_o scripture_n have_v afford_v any_o warrant_n for_o observation_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n which_o both_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n observe_v in_o the_o day_n of_o polycarp_n 24._o l._n 5._o c._n 24._o as_o be_v record_v by_o eusebius_n or_o any_o precept_n for_o bow_v to_o the_o east_n 118._o resp_n ad_fw-la quest_n 118._o which_o pseudo-justin_n mention_n as_o a_o thing_n practise_v in_o his_o day_n or_o for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o day_n on_o which_o their_o glorious_a martyr_n die_v 15._o apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 4._o c._n 15._o which_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n mention_n as_o a_o thing_n practise_v by_o the_o christian_n not_o long_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o for_o the_o water_n mix_v with_o the_o sacramental_a wine_n of_o which_o both_o justin_n and_o st._n cyprian_n speak_v ibid._n apol._n 2._o cypr._n ep._n 63._o just_a m._n ibid._n or_o for_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n send_v to_o the_o sick_a and_o absent_a to_o signify_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n and_o belong_v to_o the_o same_o altar_n or_o for_o their_o stand_n in_o their_o public_a worship_n from_o easter_n unto_o whitsunday_n 19_o resp_n ad_fw-la quest_n ●15_n can._n 19_o and_o every_o lordsday_n to_o testify_v their_o belief_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n which_o yet_o by_o the_o great_a nicene_n council_n be_v require_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o christian_a people_n and_o which_o they_o do_v according_o observe_v tertullian_n give_v we_o a_o catalogue_n of_o many_o observation_n which_o the_o church_n use_v in_o his_o day_n and_o which_o she_o vindicate_v not_o from_o the_o scripture_n 4._o de_fw-fr coron_n milit._n c._n 3_o 4._o but_o from_o the_o patronage_n of_o custom_n and_o tradition_n i_o will_v begin_v say_v he_o with_o baptism_n where_o come_v to_o the_o water_n we_o testify_v before_o the_o precedent_n or_o bishop_n that_o we_o renounce_v the_o devil_n his_o pomp_n and_o his_o angel_n then_o be_v we_o thrice_o dip_v answer_v something_o more_o than_o christ_n command_v in_o his_o gospel_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o our_o lord_n institute_v after_o supper_n we_o partake_v of_o in_o our_o meeting_n before_o the_o day_n arise_v we_o think_v it_o wickedness_n to_o fast_o or_o to_o pray_v kneel_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n we_o kneel_v not_o from_o easter_n to_o whitsunday_n whensoever_o we_o go_v forth_o or_o come_v in_o or_o whatsoever_o we_o be_v conversant_a about_o we_o sign_v our_o forehead_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o if_o you_o do_v require_v a_o law_n of_o scripture_n for_o these_o observation_n you_o will_v find_v none_o tradition_n will_v be_v allege_v as_o the_o author_n and_o custom_n the_o confirmer_n of_o they_o for_o these_o be_v observation_n which_o we_o defend_v not_o from_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o title_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o patronage_n of_o custom_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n